#there's only one swear in the whole fic what was i ON writing that
Explore tagged Tumblr posts
Text
FOR YOUR EYES ONLY âížì§
pairing á° ni-ki x fem!reader â featuring.. jungwon | word count: 2200+
â ⊠warnings & genre âș highschool au!, fluff, misunderstandings, sunshine x grumpy.
synopsis â After seeing your tiny crush nishimura riki sneak something into the confession box you just had to investigate.
lee's âËâč á° comment âguys I swear ill make a non highschool au with riki soon... I couldn't help myself.. anyways its FEB!! can't wait to write valentines themed fics!
Finally.
It was your favorite month of the whole year.
You worked as a library assistant at your schoolânot because you particularly loved the job, but because it was better than joining a club.
Well⊠thatâs what you told people.
In reality, you had a secret gig.
Tucked away in the most secluded part of the library was your confession boxâa simple, unassuming container where students could slip in anonymous notes pouring out their feelings.
It started as something just for you. A place to vent when things got overwhelming. But then, he found out.
Jungwon.
You had no choice but to let him in on your little secret, and somehow, he became your best friend. Over time, word spread, and people started using the box themselves. What once held only your thoughts turned into a place where students whispered their love stories into folded pieces of paper.
Only Jungwon knew you were the one behind it.
And now, February had arrivedâthe holy grail of confessions. Sure, people submitted notes year-round, but around Valentineâs Day? The numbers spiked.
You werenât going to lie. You loved it. Not just the thrill of reading them (and occasionally sharing the best ones with Jungwon, who never breathed a word), but the idea that you were helping people express what they were too afraid to say out loud.
So here you were, stationed at the front desk, pretending to browse book requests on the computer when a group of girls giggled their way to the back of the library.
Your eyes flickered toward them, amused. Definitely not because you were excited to read their confessions later. Nope. Definitely not.
Then, moments laterâhe walked in.
Riki.
The second you saw him, your instincts flared up. Suspicious.
Riki never stepped foot in the library. He barely did his assignments, let alone read for fun. So why was he here?
You watched, careful not to make it obvious. He glanced around, acting almost⊠nervous? And then, without a word, he disappeared into the back.
Seconds later, he reappeared from the other sideâhands in his pockets, expression unreadable, walking out as if nothing had happened.
Your breath hitched.
No way.
Did Nishimura Riki just put a confession in your box?
Your hand scrambled for your phone. You had to tell someone.
You:
JUNGWONJUNGWONOMG
PLSPLSANSWERLOOKATURPHONE
Wonnie:
Ok what the hell
What is it?
You:
You are NEVER going to believe who just slid into the back of the library.
Wonnie:
Is it Jake again? Poor guy
Maybe Jay? Idk tell me
You:
Nishimura⊠RikiâŠ
Wonnie:
⊠Fr?
Maybe he confessed to you?
You:
Right, totally.
Wonnie:
Think about it.
And you did think about it.
You and Riki had a⊠relationship. Not exactly a friendship, but not total strangers either.
You first met in detention.
It was your first time there, and you had no idea what you were supposed to do. So, naturally, you turned to the guy next to youâthe one with his headphones on, slouched in his seat like he owned the place.
Curious, you tapped his shoulder.
He flinched, looking caught before turning to glare at you. âWhat?â
You blinked. âHow did you sneak those in? Can I listen too?â
Before he could answer, you asked another question. âWait, alsoâwhat are we supposed to do in here?â
His face twisted in disbelief. âWhat do we do in detention? You sit here. Now be quiet beforeââ
âMr. Nishimura, sneaking electronics in again?â The teacherâs voice cut in, hand outstretched.
Riki groaned, slumping back in his seat before begrudgingly handing over his phone and headphones.
When the teacher walked away, he snapped his head back to you, eyes burning with betrayal.
You swore he glared at you for the rest of the day.
Ever since then, you tried to make it up to himâwith snacks, lunch, even passing him worksheets to copy. Eventually, after weeks of bugging him, he forgave you.
Kind of.
Even now, he still acted so indifferent.
Whenever you waved at him in the hallway, he looked away. When you invited him to sit with you and your friends, he ignored you. Even when you walked beside him, talking about anything and everythingâhe barely responded.
At first, you assumed he was just bad with people. But then you saw him with his friendsâlaughing, joking, talking.
So why was he only like this with you?
Eventually, you gave up.
You distanced yourself, refusing to waste energy on someone who clearly wanted nothing to do with you.
But then, every now and then, youâd catch him staringâor see him approach you, only to hesitate and walk away.
It was confusing. Frustrating. You told yourself you didnât care anymore.
Until the school trip.
It had been late at night when you were sent to fetch supplies from the shedâa small, isolated building at the edge of the woods.
You werenât scared, but walking alone with only a flashlight wasnât exactly comforting.
By the time you found everything, thunder rumbled outside. Moments later, the skies opened up.
Heavy rain. Lightning. The kind of downpour that turned dirt trails into slippery nightmares.
Running back wasnât an option.
So, hugging your knees to your chest, you sat in the shedâsilent, alone, trying not to cry.
Minutes passed. Thenâ
The door burst open.
You jumped, heart nearly stoppingâuntil your eyes locked with his.
Riki.
He stood there, soaked from head to toe, breathless, his curls sticking to his forehead.
Did he⊠run here?
He didnât speak. Just stared for a moment, like he was checking if you were okay, before stepping inside and sitting next to you.
âJesus,â he muttered. âYouâre helpless, you know that?â
You blinked, then let out a soft, teary laugh. He was trying to act tough. But he was clearly worried.
Neither of you spoke after that. You just sat there, listening to the storm. Well, you spokeârambling like you used to, and for once, he didnât seem to mind.
By the time the rain cleared, something between you had shifted.
And now, months later, here you wereâstaring at an empty confession box, knowing Riki put something inside, yet not finding his name anywhere.
Jungwonâs voice pulled you back.
âI knew Iâd find you here.â He smirked. âAnything good?â
You forced a laugh, trying to mask your disappointment. âYeah, some interesting ones. OhâMinji completely dropped her last crush and moved on to a new one. Isnât that crazy?â
Jungwon squinted at you. âYouâre looking for Rikiâs, arenât you?â
You groaned, immediately dropping your head onto the table. âIâm pitiful. Donât look at me.â
Jungwon laughed, dragging a chair out and sitting across from you. âYouâre not pitiful. Just mildly down bad.â
You groaned, keeping your forehead against the table. âBut I know he put something in there. I saw him! I was so ready to read it, but itâs likeâpoof!ânothing!â
Jungwon tapped his fingers on the table, thinking. âYou sure he actually put something in the box?â
You lifted your head slightly. âOf course, I literally watched him sneak in.â
âThenâŠâ Jungwon grinned knowingly. âWhat if he took something out?â
That made you pause. You sat up straight, eyes wide. âWait⊠What?â
âThink about it,â Jungwon continued. âIf he put in a confession and realized he wasnât ready, maybe he took it back.â
Your mind raced. That⊠actually made sense. But why would Riki take it back? And more importantlyâwho was he confessing to?
The thought made your stomach twist, and you werenât sure why.
Jungwon smirked, clearly enjoying the sight of you struggling. âYou could just ask him, you know.â
You scoffed. âYeah, right. âHey, Riki! Weird question, but did you happen to steal a confession from my box?ââ
âWhy not?â Jungwon shrugged. âOr are you scared of the answer?â
You opened your mouth, ready to deny it, but the words never came. Were you scared? The idea of Riki confessing to someone else made your chest feel tight in a way you werenât ready to unpack.
Before you could respond, the student council room door creaked open again.
And there he was.
Riki stood in the doorway, hands shoved into his pockets, his hair a little bit above his eyes which flickered between you and Jungwon before settling on you.
Jungwon raised an eyebrow, glancing between the two of you. âWelp. Thatâs my cue to leave.â He patted your shoulder before slipping past Riki, whispering a quick, âGood luck,â on his way out.
The door clicked shut. Silence.
You swallowed. âUm⊠Did you need a book orââ
âI didnât take it back.â
Your breath hitched.
Riki sighed, rubbing the back of his neck. âThe letter. I didnât take it back.â
Your heart was pounding now. You tried to keep your voice steady. âWhat do you mean?â
His gaze dropped to the floor. âI put it in there without a doubt, I think⊠someone else removed it. Maybe it was a sign not to confess to you.â
You.
Your throat went dry. âIt was⊠for me?â
Riki let out a frustrated sigh, running a hand through his hair. âYeah. Obviously.â
You blinked. âObviously? What do you mean obviously? You ignore me ninety percent of the time!â
He huffed, looking almost embarrassed. âI donât ignore you.â
âYou literally pretend not to hear me half the time!â
âBecause I donât know what to say!â Riki finally looked at you, frustration and something elseâsomething softerâlingering in his expression. âYou drive me crazy, you know that? You talk too much, youâre way too nosy, and you never leave things alone. And somehow, Iââ He stopped, exhaling sharply. âI like you, okay?â
Your brain short-circuited.
Riki rolled his eyes at your stunned silence. âThis is embarrassing.â
You snapped out of your trance. âWait, wait. Back up. You like me?â
He groaned, turning toward the door. âForget I said anythingââ
You grabbed his sleeve before he could leave.
He froze.
Slowly, you grinned. âYou like me.â
Rikiâs ears were turning red. âShut up.â
You laughed, warmth bubbling in your chest. You never thought youâd get anywhere with him, and yetâhere he was, out of breath looking at you so fondly, confessing in the most Riki-like way possible.
February was definitely your favorite month of them all.
BONUS đđËâ
The moment Riki stepped into the library, he knew he was making a mistake.
This wasnât his scene. He didnât do books, didnât do anything that required more effort than necessary. But here he was, standing in the one place he actively avoided, shoving his hands deeper into his hoodie pockets as his eyes flickered toward the back.
He could feel your gaze on him.
You were always watching him.
Not in a weird wayâmore like you were constantly trying to figure him out. Always with that curious glint in your eyes, like he was a puzzle you were determined to solve.
He hated it.
No, that wasnât true. He hated that he liked it.
And now, as he made his way toward the confession boxâthe stupidest thing heâd ever been a part ofâhe was hoping you werenât paying too much attention.
With one last glance around, he slipped to the back, pulled a folded piece of paper from his pocket, and dropped it inside.
Then, without missing a beat, he walked out through the other side, playing it cool.
It took everything in him not to look back.
He could already picture the way your brain was short-circuiting, the way you were probably grabbing your phone to text Jungwon. You always told him everything, after all.
Riki swore under his breath as he left the library.
He wasnât even sure why he did it.
Well.
That was a lie.
He knew why.
It was because of you.
Because you confused the hell out of him.
You were supposed to be annoyingâloud, persistent, way too nosy for your own good. You were supposed to be someone he could easily brush off, like he did with everyone else.
But you werenât.
Because no matter how many times he ignored your waves in the hallway, you still smiled at him. No matter how often he shut you out, you never stopped trying.
And then you stopped.
You finally gave up on him.
And for some reason, that made his chest feel too tight.
Ever since that night on the school trip, when he found you curled up alone in the shed, it had been harder and harder to act like he didnât care.
That night, when he heard you were missingâit was like he could imagine you with red eyed, shoulders shakingâhe couldnât stop himself.
Didnât even think.
He just ran.
Ran straight into the storm, through the rain, barely able to see a damn thingâbut knowing exactly where he was going.
When he finally got there, when he saw you small and fragile under the dim light, something in him cracked.
He never wanted to see you like that again.
But he didnât know how to tell you that.
He wasnât good with words. He wasnât good with feelings.
So he wrote it down instead.
It wasnât a confession, not in the way you expected.
But it was something.
Something for your eyes only.
Something he thought you would have found by now.
So when he walked passed the student council room later that evening, seeing you and Jungwon hunched over the pile of notes, he knew immediately.
You hadnât seen it.
Because if you had, you wouldnât be looking for his name like he overheard.
And now, as both your heads snapped toward him, your eyes wide and startledâ
Riki sighed, stepping forward.
âŠYou took it, didnât you? He thought looking straight at Jungwon.
Because if you didnât find his letter in the boxâŠ
Then someone must have.
What was Jungwon playing at?
What happens next? Click
#enhypen#enhypen fluff#enhypen x reader#enhypen fanfiction#enhypen fic#fanfic#fluff fic#enhypen angst#enhypen niki#ni ki enhypen#ni ki x reader#ni ki fluff#nishimura riki#niki x reader#ni ki#enhypen jungwon#yang jungwon enhypen#jungwon enhypen#enhypen jake#jay enhypen
263 notes
·
View notes
Note
so i actually need pt 2 to the older patrick younger art fic right NOW.. jk but it was amazing
Yâall. YâALL. I heard you. And though I donât really love writing sequels⊠Iâll do anything for you honestly <33
Original.
Itâs a mess and way too long which is prbly to be expected by now. Idk. Sometimes you just have to get out of your head and post đ
18+ NSFW
CW: AGE GAP 10-11 years, power dynamics, teacher/student vibes, first time vibes, AND mild daddy!kink whoopsie! How did that happen? Obviously if any of these things make you uncomfortable donât read. I donât take it personally. Iâll explain myself a bit. Art in my imagination here didnât get constantly shown up by Patrick and because Patrick wasnât there Art got the attention Patrick got for his skills so heâs a little more arrogant (still a little insecure because thatâs his core) and still messy. Patrick had the Tashi injury which makes him a little less arrogant (brought down a notch but still overcompensates and actively self sabotages because thatâs his core) and still messy.
ââ
Art is still keyed up the next morning. His roommate, Devon, is bragging about hooking up with a senior. Art is trying to pay attention but all he can think about is how he got on his knees and gave messy head to Patrick, Coach Zweig, his 31 year old ridiculously hot tennis coach. And how Patrick practically promised to fuck him if he was a really good boy all week. Heâs sitting on his hands trying not to go crazy.
âWhat did you get up to?â Devon finally asks him. Picking up his towel and getting ready to shower.
âCan you keep a secret?â Art asks.
That makes him sit back down. âYeah of course.â
Art tells him about Patrick, most of it anyway, watching his eyes widen. Heâs not on the tennis team but heâs heard enough about Coach Zweig from Art that he canât help giggling.
âYouâre fucking joking.â
âIâm not, I swear.â
âHoly shit. And I thought I was doing something with that senior. Wow. This would only happen to you.â
Art isnât sure what he means by that but heâs suddenly asking a million questions. Art tells him some things, embellishing and withholding various details. The closest Art ever came to actually fucking a boy was when he used to sneak in Devonâs bed whenever he got horny at night. They were so close to fucking when Art made him stop. so he made Art promise to stop leading him on. And now theyâre proper roommates with boundaries and everything. Though sometimes Art thinks if he asked for it Devon would still fuck him.
Devon thinks itâs hot, the whole Patrick thing. Thinks Patrick wants to make Art his kept boy. âWell I mean⊠heâs old and everyone says heâs loaded, right? He can give you whatever you want.â Devon says.
âPlease, he wouldnât even give me his phone number.â Art says dismissively. âAnd I donât need to be kept I just need his dick.â
Devon chews his bottom lip looking Art over and Art wonders if he crossed a boundary. Heâs so fucking messy with them.
âLucky him,â Devon says dryly, rolling his eyes. âBut maybe you should milk it. Youâre young and beautiful and blonde and heâs your coach so itâs like.. itâs kind of illicit. He could get you a nice place off campus⊠be your sugar daddy. Girls do it all the time.â
âI think heâd kill me if I ever called him that,â Art laughs, making up his mind to definitely call him that at some point.
Devon agrees to come out with him next weekend but he still has to wait the whole fucking week. It feels like torture.
They have practice everyday and a game on Friday. Which means Patrickâs in those short shorts running them around the court every single day. Art canât keep his mind off of him. Just wants his attention so bad, everyday heâs doing everything he can just to get Patrick to look in his direction. But Patrickâs got an epic poker face. Heâs so fucking cool and calm and collected. So good at acting like nothing happened. Like everything is the same and they never did what they did.
There's one difference. Instead of having the assistant coach do it⊠heâll bring Art to the side and personally correct him when he thinks Art could play better. Show him how to position himself, swing the racket, follow through. Big hands, rough hands, gripping Art's waist to turn his body, his wrist to direct his swing. The same hands that effortlessly lifted off his lap the other night.
âCanât be all talk and no action sweetheart,â Patrick says lightly, as heâs standing behind him. God. Itâs actually stupid how sexy he is. Artâs never thought this much about being penetrated, ever. He makes sure to arch his back just a little more than he usually does. Patrick presses a hand to the small of his back.
Art fingers the grip of his racket. âI donât think I was all talk.â
Patrick chuckles, low and soft. âStop it. Focus. Bring that energy here,â he says, âall that confidence right here and no one will rattle you.â
âLike this?â Art demonstrates. He makes a mess of it just so that Patrick will touch him again. It takes a minute before Patrick catches on.
âI think you get it,â he says dryly.
âPlease show me one more time. I just wanna be a good boy for you,â Art says lightly. It makes Patrick swallow⊠his gaze falls helplessly over Arts body and then he looks away smirking.
âAre you having fun?â He says, leaning in close, eyes all crinkly with amusement.
Art wants to kiss him. âMmhm,â he hums, pressing his lips together. âThough sometimes it still feels like my mouth is so full of you I could just⊠choke.â
âYeah⊠rightâŠâ Patrick rolls his eyes, still smiling and then he takes a deep breath and drags his hand over his beard. âHmâŠWhatâs today?â
âWednesday,â Art says.
âAnd my plans for the weekend are still up in the air,â he says, patting Art on the shoulder as he takes his racket and turns to face the team. âFive laps around the court, everybody, letâs gooo!â He says loudly, blowing his whistle. âFucking hustle!â
Thereâs an audible groan and the sounds of rackets dropping as everyone stops what theyâre doing and starts running. âGo join them. And if you keep it up itâll be sprints next.â Patrick says softly.
Art grins, as much as he hates running and heâs sure his teammates will assume heâs responsible for this bit of conditioning, it was still totally fucking worth it.
He probably shouldâve focused more but he wins on Friday in spite of himself. Tennis is such a mental game and while heâs generally confident and loves the attention that comes with playing as number one on the center stage, heâs not consistent. Thatâs what Patrick always says at least. There are opponents that leave him feeling less sure of himself and then he tends to get in his head imagining heâs somehow inadequate or deficient.
One of those players is a French recruit from UCLA, Jensen Bordeaux. Art starts out strong. Crushes it in the first set. But when Bordeaux fights back in the second and he falls apart a little. Itâs a bad habit. He wins another game but itâs not enough. He ends up nearly going into a third set.
âRemember what I said,â Patrick takes him to the side between points. âStop acting like you canât finish him off. You can have whatever you want right?â
Art gazes at him and bites his lip. âMmhm.â He nods.
âGood. You know what you want. Just take it. Okay?â
âYeah okay,â Art says breathlessly.
âGood boy,â Patrick says, rubbing his shoulders, a little smirk on his lips. âTry not to⊠you know⊠choke.â
Art feels heated from the inside out. He goes back on the court except heâs not thinking about the game. Instead heâs so anxious for the promise of tomorrow night that all this begins to feel like a mere obstacle to that. He makes easy work of it, winning the tiebreaker and shifting it so that Stanford goes home the winning team.
Everyone on the team goes out to a frat party to celebrate and Art is so drunk and horny by the end of the night. He stumbles into his dorm at 1 am, falls drunkenly into bed and starts touching himself. Fingers in his mouth imagining itâs the heavy weight and thickness of Patrickâs cock. Imagining Patrickâs large hands in his hair, imagining the soft, easily amused tone of his voice as he murmurs. âGood boy.â Makes him come so fast and hard he passes out.
Heâs a mess in the morning. In more ways than one. They donât have practice after game days so he sleeps off his hangover and the day flies by. He takes a long hot shower before he gets ready to go. Anxiety and anticipation competing for space in his brain and body. Devon loans him clothes that are so much tighter than anything he wears regularly. âTrust me, heâs gonna be all over you in this.â
They get there at the same time as last week but Patrick doesnât come right away. Artâs waiting and waiting and waiting for Patrick to show up at the gay bar. Devon is at a table, a new boy on his lap and theyâre making out. Art is half tipsy, swinging his legs on a barstool while this guy from the baseball team stands between his thighs asking him everything about tennis like itâs the most interesting thing in the world. And thatâs when Patrick finally arrives. He spots Art across the bar and smirks. Art gets up right away, making excuses to the now frowning baseball player about seeing him around on campus.
âThat was fast,â Patrick smirks, as Art sidles up next to him.
âWell I didnât know youâd take so long to come,â Art says, moving closer. âIs that an old person thing?â
âMm, youâŠâ Patrick chuckles, tapping his credit card on the bar. Heâs got such a great smile. God. Art is so far gone. This is tragic.
âCan you buy me a drink?â Art asks in his ear.
âNo fucking way,â Patrick says, amused.
âSeriously?â
âSeriously, how many drinks have you had tonight?â
Art holds up 3 fingers.
âIs that how many fingers Iâm gonna have to put in before I can⊠nevermindâŠâ Patrick says.
Art grins. Warmth spreading throughout his body. âItâs really big,â Art whispers. âMaybe you need four?â
âGodâŠâ Patrick laughs, incredulous. âI shouldnât even fucking be here.â He sighs, as the bartender approaches them. He orders a whiskey and because itâs two for one he gives in and lets Art pick something. He orders rum and coke.
Art feels giddy as he sips on it.
âSo used to getting whatever you ask for,â Patrick says, looking him over, teasing a finger into one of his belt loops. âTwenty years old. God. You make me fucking crazy.â He whispers in Artâs ear.
Art canât help grinning.
Patrick makes him wait while he talks to people his own age. Acting all wholesome. âOh heâs just one of my players, Iâm gonna make sure he gets home safe.â He even gives Art the key so he can wait in his jeep. Artâs hard as soon as he gets in it. Listens to music too loud and ponders touching himself.
Heâs kissing on Patrick right away when he finally gets in the car. Heâs been so eager all week. âMmâŠâ Patrick pulls back, tangling his fingers into Artâs hair. âFuck⊠gimme a minute to get you home, okay?â he says and he turns on the engine and puts the music back at a sensible volume.
âIs it far?â Art asks.
Patrick huffs a laugh. âTake a deep breath.â
It doesn't help. Everything smells like him. Art puts a hand on Patrickâs thigh, his skin is so heated. He remembers how warm Patrickâs cock felt in his mouth and then his mouth starts watering.
âIs Tashi there?â Art sighs.
âWhat do you fucking think?â
Art leans close, just breathing him in. Resting his head on Patrickâs shoulder. âSheâs so pretty.â He hums.
âI know.â
âYouâre so pretty.â
Patrick chuckles, a low vibration Art can feel from his throat that makes him shiver. âAnd you're so tipsy. And so fucking young.â
âBut you like it.â Art says softly, rubbing Patrickâs thigh. Skin so warm heâs like a furnace. Already hard enough that Art can feel it.
âAnd I know Iâm gonna regret it.â
Their house is actually huge. On the nicer side of Palo Alto. Itâs one of the ones with a pool and a tennis court and a crazy nice view of the city. Art doesnât know any of this until later because as soon as they're inside heâs trying to get his tongue in Patrickâs mouth. Patrick walks him back towards the living room where thereâs a huge leather sofa. Art climbs onto his lap as soon as he sits down. Patrick is touching him everywhere, fingers tangled into his hair. Hands under his shirt, rubbing him, teasing him. Art is just trying his best to feel him, lick into his mouth and taste him. All while grinding against his prominent bulge. Grabbing at his zipper trying to get it out.
âCan you fuck me?â Art begs against his lips.
âFuck,â Patrick breathes against his lips, heâs gripping Artâs waist tightly. Slowing him down. He sighs like heâs trying to pull himself together. âMmkay. God. Stand up a minute. I need to get a condom and some lube.â
Art gets up reluctantly, nervous energy making him bounce on his toes like heâs waiting on a serve. Patrick smirks, âRelax⊠Iâll be back in a minute.â He pats Artâs shoulder as he gets up and disappears into another room. It doesnât matter whether Art sits or stands, heâs anxious. He looks around the lavish room, fancy furniture, paintings that look expensive. Massive kitchen like the kind you see in movies. Patrick comes back and heâs all loose, t-shirt wrinkled, hair messy, eyes soft. Heâs probably done this a million times. Heâs got a condom between his fingers which he hands to Art.
âYou wanna put it on me?â
âMmhm,â Art says. Heâs also carrying a little bottle of lube. Artâs trying to rip the packet open but his hands are all shaky. Especially when Patrick lifts his t-shirt off, heâs so solid, strong biceps, chest hair that gets darker condensed down the line of his stomach to where his jeans are unbuttoned. Art wants to lick it.
âOkay,â Patrick settles on the sofa, kicking off his shoes. âGive me that, you pretty little virgin and take those clothes off.â
Art hands him the condom a little embarrassed, and starts undoing his jeans. Kicks off his shoes and peels off his shirt so heâs only in boxers. Patrick bites open the packet and eases his jeans down and his cock out. Art takes shallow breaths watching him roll the condom on. Itâs so big the condom is a magnum size and it fits snug. Heâs heard horror stories about first times, even read a few on Reddit and heâs starting to feel a little panicked.
âLook at you.â Patrick says softly, eyes dragging slowly down Arts body. He pulls Art onto his thighs, god he has thick muscular thighs, Art canât help wiggling. Patrickâs got him close so their cocks line up, and his palm is covered in lube and heâs gripping them both at the same time. It feels so fucking good Art thinks he might come too fast. Heâs moaning, eyes squeezed shut when Patrick stops. Art opens his eyes to see Patrick wetting his fingers with more lube and slips a thick calloused finger back along Artâs entrance. Art feels himself seizing up as Patrick presses slowly inside.
âTake deep breaths,â Patrick whispers. Advice Art tries to follow but it just feels so crazy. He eases another finger in and Art tenses even more.
âMm if your so fucking tight, I canât fuck you sweetheart.â
âDoes it hurt?â Art whispers.
Patrick takes a breath. âYeah a little at first⊠but I think I can make it feel a littleâŠuh betterâŠâ
Art shivers, his body suddenly overrun by pleasure as Patrickâs teasing his fingertips deep inside him. Art can hear himself moaning voice suddenly pitched so high he barely recognizes it. âPlease⊠please⊠âhe begs. âPlease fuck me⊠fuck me⊠fuck me daddy.â Art gasps, losing himself as heâs riding the sensation.
âFuck⊠what did you call me?â Patrick whispers.
Art bites his lip, his body heating up immediately with embarrassment. âMm sorry. I didnât⊠I didnât mean to⊠I meant like sugarâŠâ He says softly as Patrick slowly pulls his fingertips out. Art is breathless. Patrick doesnât look mad but his expression has gone heady.
âFuck⊠I can be daddy if you need it,â Patrick breathes. âComeâŠsit on daddyâs dick. Holy shit. What are you doing to me?â
Art swallows, his stomach doing flip flops for the way Patrick says it. He sits up on his knees, he can feel Patrick lining up. It actually feels like a lot. Like way too much. Impossible to take. Heâs got his eyes squeezed shut and watering feeling the insane stretch as he sinks so fucking slowly down on it.
âOh god,â he keeps whispering over and over like a prayer.
âFuck,â Patrick breathes. His hands gripping Artâs waist.
Heâs anxious moving slowly, gripping tightly, itâs too much, heâs too full. And Patrick starts to adjust him while gently rubbing his tummy. âRelax⊠lets try this angle,â Patrick whispers. Fucking into him in a way that he starts hitting that pleasure spot deep inside with even more intensity. âGood⊠good boyâŠthatâs rightâŠbreathe⊠breathe⊠keep breathing⊠fuckâŠâ Patrick coaches. And then slowly as it happens Art is moaning, bouncing on his lap just to feel it hit over and over and over and over again.
âI wanna⊠mmm I like it so much. wanna do it all the time,â Art moans nonsensically as heâs riding, not sure whatâs happening, just that heâs seeing stars. âI wanna fuck you all the time. All the fucking time. wanna fuck you at school⊠during practice. In your bed. Wanna be your boy toy. Play with your big dick. Fuck me, oh fuck⊠fuck me daddy, daddy please. It feels so fucking good.â
âJesus,â Patrick groans he barely grips Artâs cock and heâs coming loudly, spurts of it covering Patrickâs chest and his own. He can feel Patrick still pressing up into him, it suddenly feels like way too much. Every movement making him shake with how sensitive it feels and then Patrick stills, swearing over and over, gripping Artâs body tight and burying himself deep. Low gravelly sounds against Artâs ear.
âFuck,â Patrick gasps, breathlessly. âOh⊠god. Youâre so⊠fuck Iâm so screwed.â
âMm,â Art collapses against his chest, running his fingers down Patricks soft chest hair all painted with his jizz. His knees are all sweaty and sticking to the leather but he doesnât really care. He just wants to be close. Patrick is gently rubbing his lower back and it feels amazing. Art can feel him softening and slowly slipping out of him, he thinks he might fall asleep like this.
âYou okay?â Patrick asks.
âMmhm,â Art says.
âYou sure?â
âYeah. Can we do it again?â
âGod,â Patrick laughs. âI need at least five minutes and I need you to get up cause I gotta piss.â
âNo,â Art whines, unhappy about anything that means he wonât be warmed by Patrick's body heat even for a second. He wraps his arms around Patrickâs shoulders.
Patrick chuckles. âI canât go anywhere?â
âNo,â Art says. âYouâre my pillow.â
âGuess I fucked your virgin ass good,â Patrick says.
âFor an old guy,â Art says softly, smiling against Patrickâs throat.
âFor your daddy, you little freakâŠâ Patrick says gently, squeezing his ass. âCome on, get up or weâre gonna have a bigger mess to clean up.â
Art groans and unwraps his arms. âCan I come?â
âTo piss?â Patrick raises his eyebrows.
âYeah,â Art nods.
Patrick smirks and rolls his eyes before gently curling his fingers into Arts hair. âYeah sure, come on.â
Art kisses him and he sighs into Arts mouth. âI need a fucking cigarette too.â
âCan I stay over?â Art asks against his lips.
âMmâŠâ he ponders and sighs. âFuck it I donât know why I bother pretending to set boundaries with youâŠâ he says, helping Art to his shaky feet. âTashi will be home tomorrow afternoon. So you know⊠better not sleep too late.â
Art grins at him. âDoes she know about me?â
âDoes she know that after I finally got a good job as a tennis coach at my old school that Iâm this close to losing it because I canât help fucking my barely legal 20 year old star player? No actually. She doesnât know.â He says dryly.
Art laughs. âI wouldnât tell. But I mean imagine if I slept with you both. Iâd learn so much about tennis.â
Patrick snorts, âThis kinda talk is gonna make me take you home tonight actuallyâŠâ
âMm too late. You let me call you daddy,â Art grins. âYouâre never getting rid of me.â
93 notes
·
View notes
Text
jealousy, jealousy, jealousy. [part of this fic]
ever since the two of you returned from the gion matsuriâwith a new love bloomed in an indian summerâgojo satoru has become the talk of your town.
who's that handsome man patrolling around the corner?
i swear, my lady, i just want to meet with him forâuhâsome fighting sessions... yes! that's it.
(...)
sister, any chance you can set me up with him?
(you almost yelled at the poor girl before nana dragged you back into the home.)
yes, you get it; handsome face drinking in every ounce of sunlight, the rippled body hiding underneath his haori that leaves nothing to imagination. combined with the softest of smilesâa dazzling diamond; most expensive of them all in the whole of the bazaarâyes, you know.
it's satoru, what did you expect?
and it makes you feel all the more worse.
beacuse there's not a single day gone by where satoru doesn't remind you of how you meant to him, that all of which that constitutes himâeverything that is gojo satoruâ already had your name engraved on them, signed yours the moment he caught you peeking from behind those excuse of a blinds.
(he would write it himself if you ever asked him to.)
everything, absolutely everything: his belongings? all yours, sweetness. miss him? a whisper of your longing and be ready to be carried back to your quaters as he pays no mind to the ever growing stack of his tasks.
but most importantly, his love? only for you, darling, only for you.
(a heavy breath whispered between flashes of pleasure during moonless nights as he craddles you close to his heart.)
then why?
the question lingers; a new friend you don't know how to greet.
why does your chest feel so tight all of a sudden? it asks, but you don't have any answer.
hidden away from the fronts of your minka ignoring an agitated feeling pricking at your nerves, you stand in your courtyardâthe usual whirlwind of sakura petals and brine water swirling around you; silently watching the scene unfoldingâwith your kitty in your hands. and satoru... well, he certainly looks like he's over the moon.
smushed in a horde of femalesâteens just returning from the school with a bunch of middle aged aunties who can't help but froth at the sight of a much younger man; you don't mind them, that much. but the much prettier and much younger faces in the crowd stand apart, almost glowing.
sakura paints their cheeks while long eyelashes flutter ever so slightly as satoru laughsâand you almost do too. it's overbearing: the obnoxiously high giggles and whatnot. can't they just stop? it's so painfully obvious at this point.
though your eye almost bulges out, the moment one of their hands run across his biceps, feeling and squeezing, andâ
shriek!
your cat yells loudly, immediately fleeing from your not so safe embrace. (sorry, yumi!) its loud noises reach the group just outside your courtyardâyour eyes meets satoru's.
you look away, and he smiles, cerulean eyes hypotized by you and only you.
satoru immediately excuses himselfâloud exasperated sighs following his leave.
good riddance.
âhow are you, my love?â
ridiculously broad frame settles in front of you, wood creaks, and birds fly. satoru smiles at you, pearly whites gimmering ever so gentlyâthe sincere one reserved just for you.
even though nectar fills in your mouth, your lips remain shut, moulded into a thin lineânot giving him the pleasure of hearing you speak.
(but it's not his fault.)
satoru blinksâconfusion seeping into his handome featuresâas he leans forward, head supported by his palms. he repeats: âhow are you?â
he's only met with a loud huff, and a whine almost escapes his throat. your eyes move from the leaves decorating the bushes, to the koi dancing in the pond all the way to the honey dipped sky; anywhere except his awaiting onesâdepraving him of yet another thing he loved about you.
âwhat's the matter, darling?â a soothing reassurance guided by his gentle caress on your knuckles as he takes your delicate hands in his scarred ones; you almost give in.
almost.
âoh?â lacking breath as something growls inside you, it's the only thing you can manage amidst the spiraling of your rationaleâa thirst in your throat that can't be quenched even with the ambrosia itself, âwhy don't you ask yourself that?â
you exclaim, dazed eyes flickering between the front gates before fleeing back to the falling pink petals.
so that's what it's about.
satoru smirksâa little curve arcing his lipsâenough to crack through your stubborn walls. you watch from your peripheral as he glances back at the minka's gateâyes, some of the ladies are still here, squealing in joy as satoru waves at them.
this bastardâ
and on cue, an unknown force pulls on you, and you crash against himâsoftness trampling under his sturdy frame. shock paints your face as you turn to look at him. he's still smirkingâa teasing glint shining in his eyes.
âsatoru!â you gasp out as large hands travel under your robe, hot skin picking up underneath his naturally icy palms. âwâwhat are you doingââ
silenced.
effectively so by the push of his soft lips on yours. satoru urges you to kiss him back, a gentle pinch on your back finalized with the tugging on your bottom lips, and you do. your mouth agape as he explores your caravansâdesperately licking all over your palateâpainting something of an apology you understand immediately.
oh satoru...
you whisper his name, spit-slicked lips curling against his, and he whispers yours back before his claim yours againâsucking with such reverence that even the sakura petals shy away from the two of you.
long forgetten are the ladies from beforeâyou don't know when they ran away, and you don't care at all because the little itch in the back of your head is soothed at last.
curses satoru, curses.
a/nâ i need him so bad...
#gojo x reader#x reader#gn reader#gojo satoru x reader#gojo x you#gojo fluff#jujutsu kaisen x reader#jujutsu kaisen gojo satoru#gojo satoru â#my writing â
74 notes
·
View notes
Text
i was re-reading before i go and spoil it all and i completely forgot i refused to let them swear for the first few chapters bc why did red go âwhat the actual heckâ sheâs not FIVE
#there's only one swear in the whole fic what was i ON writing that#levi rambles#im back from my break and READY TO YAP#glassheart#before i go and spoil it all (by saying something stupid like 'i love you')#charminghearts
41 notes
·
View notes
Text
hi i wanted to draw my own au so have a snippet of scene i rewrote like 12 times and will likely rewrite again
#was thinking about captioning this with uhhh the written version of the scene in my drafts#but its mostly just dialogue#so youre not missing much#i hope i convey the emotion well through expression#sigh part of the reason im hesitant about making this au a comic instead of a fic is that like. most of what ive written for it is prose-#-that doesnt translate that well visually?#a lot of the storytelling for this au i think is told better with narration#so if/when i ever like. share the whole story#it will likely just be a fic#but i suck at sharing unfinished writing on tumblr so what i post here is mostly scenes i wrote turned into comics#<- partially to gauge interest! i like knowing if people care about what im making#but also partially just because i REALLY like this au. its super self indulgent#i know i only draw angsty shit for it but i swear its about friendship ok. like half of what ive written is really sweet#.the other half is actually angst BUT THATS IRRELEVANT. ok normal tags now#doodles#ghost roxas au#roxas#sora#kingdom hearts#hmm i dont think this one translated as well as it couldve. its meant to be a sort of slow build to outright anger#bc its like. soras confusion + frustration finally building to the point hes yelling#but it feels sort of sudden here so idk. could also be that theres no context to this#roxas' reaction too reads a bit differently than i wrote it as (more angry than like. ptsd response for lack of a better descriptor)#WHATEVER WHATEVER DONE RAMBLING IN THE TAGS I HOPE YOU LIKE THE ART
45 notes
·
View notes
Note
I wanna know ur Fontaine msq criticisms đïžđïžđIâm all ears
I'm not sure if you wanted me to talk about this secretly or publicly but! Here I go!
The TLDR: Fontaine MSQ aestheticised prison, poverty, child abuse, the justice system/court and didn't properly address any of it.
More:
Focalors/Furina has way too much of a sympathetic angle for a dictator who's lets people drown with her inaction.
Neuvillette feels Bad for sentencing some people to death/prison, but that's it. He's one of the most powerful people in Fontaine. If he felt like there are systemic injustices, I.E sending an abused Child to prison, he should be the first person to DO something about it, not just cry and be sad so the audience can be like aw, that's complex character writing isn't it? No it's not! And guilt doesn't absolve you!!!!!!! (These are stuff we deal with in OTCOJ read my fic now /j)
Meropide has children in it, both Sentenced there (Wriothesley) and BORN THERE (Lanoire), and this is just a quirk of the place. Not only that, Meropide accepts prisoners of all genders and crimes. There are abusers and abuse victims in one place. Do you know how bad that is? How much potential for crimes to happen in a place like thatâ oh wait, Meropide isn't under Fontaine's jurisdiction. If you are assaulted as an inmate it literally means nothing to the court.
Wriothesley had no qualifications when he took over. Depending on how long he lived on the streets, how old he was when he killed his parents, how old he was when he was first taken in by the orphanage, etc, the man might never have more than 4â5 years of formal education. Sigewinne probably had to teach him how to write reports. And do Meropide's spreadsheets. Edit because I forgot to elaborate on this one: This isn't a point brought up anywhere, which is bad, because when poverty and incarceration robs you of a proper education (and the rights to vote in many places too, too, by the way), it reduces your prospects for jobs, reduces many people's ability to get a home etc etc. Wriothesley was just, narratively, Given his position.
Meropide is an industrialized prison, and they portray this as a good thing. Prisoners are paid in coupons for their labour, and this is also portrayed as a good thing.
The One-Meal-A-Day reform was something Paimon gushed about being so great of a perk, that people might want to go to jail for food (could be interesting and reflective of systemic poverty if MHY had brains, but they don't, so I was just Pissed because essentially all Paimon wanted to say was "Prison isn't so bad, but still don't go to prison guys! Prison labour is really hard!"). By the way, in most real-world prisons they are obligated to feed you three meals a day. Because that's how much food a human needs. MHY went with one meal just so they can say "if you want to eat more, you have to work." And then the welfare meal is a goddamn gacha. So imagine you're a starving child who's too weak to work in the fucking robot assembly line, and you wander up for your first meal in 24 hours, only to luck in with a shit one. I'd kill myself.
They wrote Wriothesley, who's a victim of the system, into a guy who's say shit like "I'm the Duke I can do whatever I want" for a cool moment where he choke-slams an inmate (I know he was a bad guy. But also, in copaganda when cops are violent/disregarding protocols, they are always only portrayed to do that against bad guys, so what does our critical thinking tells us about this one?) They wrote Wriothesley, who was an inmate of a prison so bad, so notorious that it is the literal boogeyman of Fontaine, that has a legal (???) fighting pit, with an administrator who abuses his position to be unreasonable, to willingly stay in the place and become an Administrator who would choke-slam an inmate while saying a cool line about how he has the power to do whatever he wants. They wrote him, the guy who had to be fed on the streets by melusines, to think one-meal-a-day was a good enough reform (while he spends god-knows how much on his boat). This wasn't a victim-turns-into-abuser narrative either, they want all this to be seen as positive character growth.
And then, the final kicker is, they gloss over his entire abuse. You can only read about these shit in his profile, which most people don't because they don't Have Him or doesn't care to unlock it/read it online, and they jammed his entire backstory into a flaccid info-dump at the end of his character story quest. This man isn't Allowed to feel abused and neglected and show any reaction to it within the narrative of Fontaine itself, because if they actually Gave Weight to what happened to him, they'd have to confront THE FUCKING JUSTICE SYSTEM they had NO PLANS on criticising. I don't think they ever explicitly said the fucking Crime-Theatre nonsense was Bad either.
I could go on, but this is already so long. But yeah, I hope this gave you an idea.
#and then. and im putting my most controversial opinion in the tags bc im scared lmao. but like... then... you have the fans..... doing......#the same fucking thing.#the amount of times I have seen Wriothesley used as just a side prop for Neuvillette to feel bad about shit. While Wriothesley is just.....#portrayed as having the inner peace and acceptance of a fucking monk. I was shocked when I read some fics I swear#they really said this man has no trauma at all! the stuff in his past? he's over it!#i hate that passivity when writing victims. like ok if One is written like that#sure. but MHY write all their victims like this#I mean look at fucking Lanoire#and Neuvillette sentenced him to prison after he killed his parents who were never confronted by the law. That's canon.#that's more canon than WRLT itself.#why weren't they confronted? did wriothesley try to talk to someone about it? why did he feel like killing them is his only option ?????#at least have there be some sort of conflict and friction there. How does Wriothesley feel about the court and Neuvillette when#this is the literal system that allowed all that shit to happen to him in the first place???#are you Sure he won't be at least a little wary? the fact that some people think he's Grateful to Neuvillette or even idolises him is crazy#because the man literally subjected him to prison. and if you want to portray his prison life as easy breezy and trauma free#you undermine his entire shitty little 'prison reform' narrative#and if you think he'd be completely 100% accepting of the justice system. Then why the fuck would he kill his parents himself#don't you see that the whole 'I'll accept whatever sentence in order to kill my parents' thing in itself is an act of defying the system#and I Hate#this idea. about being some of the most powerful men in the nation. and yet they can't fucking TRY to set up a better system or smth#i can't believe I read a fic where leaving starving street kids croissants is the most they (the characters and the writer) want to do#like. what the fuck. the whole point of that scene is just to make neuvillette feel bad and be like aw......... poor people exist.... OK???#this is literally how MHY would portray him though.... tbf..... This is what ppl would argue as 'in character'#I just think the character they're in is bad.#I will say I'm giving the fic a lot of grief. there's more to the scene than that. and. ultimately.....#fanfic is (saying this through gritted teeth) ........ recreational....................and free........... in the end.................#i dont think this is reflective of the writer. I do think it is reflective of the way the canon material (genshin impact)#presents in the audience who consumes it. most fans only want these guys to fuck anyway. not think about systemic injustices#canon doesn't make it about the systemic injustices either so why should we. the aesthetic of slums and prisons are just there for fun guys#IM JUST CRAZY OK. I SHOULDNT EVEN BE HERE THIS IS NOT FOR ME . I DONT CARE THAT MUCH FOR PEOPLE FUCKING AND I CARE TOO MUCH
30 notes
·
View notes
Text
I'm going to say again like I know it is really dumb to feel this way, but I finally put into words why I get so annoyed when people ask me for a part 2 to one of my works. Like I explained once to people that writing is a very slow and arduous task for me, but it's more than that?
Picture you are an artist working on a painting. You spend months on it to get everything just right. You pour time and energy into getting the perfect composition, the perfect lighting, the perfect shades etc. And then finally, you finish it. After a year, you finally finished your masterpiece. And your work is a hit. People really like it. But then.... Someone comes up to you and says, "Gosh, I really love this painting! But you know what? I love it so much that I think the painting is much too small. You know what? You should add on two extra feet of canvas onto the right side of your painting. That way, you can add on more to your painting and it'll be even bigger and more enjoyable!"
To me, that's what it feels like when someone asks for a part two. Like this last fic honest to God I started on more than a year ago. Granted, I'd pick it up and put it back down, but I put a lot of work into making sure everything was as perfect as possible. It's not an amazing fic, mind you, but it still gave me a lot of trouble. But eventually I finished it into a COMPLETE work. It's a finished painting. That's the story I wanted to tell in its entirety.
I get why people want a part two. I get that the story ends to leave you wanting to know what happens next. But that's the point. That's the story I wanted to tell. It's complete. This isn't supposed to be pure romance. It's supposed to be more on the comedic side. But when people ask for a part two, it's like they're telling me that they're not satisfied with my artwork, that it's not perfect and needs more work for it to become perfect. It's like they're ignoring all the year's worth of effort I put into making sure the composition, wording, humor, etc was just right. Not only that. I should put another year's worth of work into making it truly perfect. It's insulting and exhausting.
Granted, like I said, I do understand people completely do not intend to make me feel this way. I'm not irritated with these people directly. I know it's supposed to be a compliment. But like.... Maybe it's because I'm prideful but I really can't help but be insulted. It's telling me that I didn't do a good job as a writer.
#rambles#'but a good writer makes people want to read more!!'#that's true but i still dont like it#i have a feeling if i explained this to my grandpa he'd understand what i mean#i think another reason why it rubs me the wrong way is... the attitude people have to fanmade content in general#people on this site have no appreciation for hard work#this site is mainly greasy fast food when it comes to reader-insert fics#when they ask for a part two it feels like they're putting in an order at mcdonalds#they're only doing it to reap the rewards of my hard work#i can't spit these things out in one sitting#i swear to god i take an average of eight months or more to release any long work#asking for a part 2 really isnt a compliment at all#you're just giving me an order#you didn't tell me a single thing about why you liked my work. just that you want more#like does this make sense?#istg writing this is like.... i am so my grandfather's granddaughter#both prideful obsessed loners that cant take a compliment#also if its not clear if you added two extra feet of canvas to the right of a painting like....#you essentially have to rework the whole thing#might as well start from the very beginning#every intentional choice you made in your painting is ruined#i know it sounds like i'm exaggerating but that's what it feels like being told to add a part two#i cant just simply add on a chapter#i have to reframe everything from the ground up#do you realize how daunting that is?
3 notes
·
View notes
Text
FIVE! - C.K.
Synopsis. Five hours - itâs all it takes for Chosoâs baby fever to take over. After all, youâd look so pretty with his kid - five of them, in fact.
Pairing. Choso Kamo x ReaderÂ
Content. MDNI, fem! reader, established relationship, unprotected, brĂ©eding, Choso with rings + a tongue piercing, creampĂe, mentioned kids, cĂșmplay, he goes feraI, oraI (fem receiving), Itadori family shenanigans (mild spoilers for unc-kuna), overstĂm, fĂngering, pet names, swearing.
Word count. 5.9k
A/N. Will I ever write a Choso fic without the Itadori family? No absolutely not.
4:37PM.
âOoo, Cho can we check that place out?â
And, listen, just because Choso would give you the moon right along with his heart doesnât exactly mean heâs jumping with joy when he follows your gaze to that gaudy little shop tucked away in a corner of the mall. Flashing a loud, glittering sign reading, âFORTUNES: FIND YOUR FUTURE!â
Traitorous memories flash through his mind with each step you drag him closer. Of all those fortune shops heâd frequented years ago, trying to figure out whether youâd say yes to a date - before even thinking of actually asking you.Â
He wonât ask anything, Choso reassures, stepping through the heady, curtained doorway. Probably not anything, heâs musing, pulling out his wallet to pay for your session. Well, maybe some things, he concludes, eyeing the sprightly old woman that takes a seat opposite you two, peering down at her dramatically large glass ball on the table.Â
But that doesnât mean heâll-
âBabies.â
âHuh?â
âYes.â the woman gives a solemn nod. âFive of them.â
Both of you let out a squawk of surprise, much to the amusement of the fortune teller. And Choso can feel his palms getting sweaty against your own as he manages to croak out a low, disbelieving, âFive?â
All but toppling out of his seat in suspense as she takes a moment to scrutinize her orb once more. And, surely glass balls can glitch, right? Mix up fortunes or something? Because while he knows youâll be by his side in this life and every other one after - kids were a whole other responsibility that neither of you had talked about, yet.
At least, thatâs what Choso was trying to convince himself right before the woman lets out a thoughtful hum, âWell, you-â pointing a wisened, accusing finger right in his flushed face. â-want more - about eight - but, of course, your future wife says no.â Gesturing to your giggling figure, âHonestly, young man, learn to keep it in your pants, the poor dear!â
Shit, he was going to run away, do something to end up on the national news - and judging by the way you squeeze his hand, you could tell, too.Â
Subconsciously, Chosoâs eyes scan the wall for any hidden cameras, wondering what type of strange prank this was. It had happened once four years ago - and just-so-happened to be what made him give up and finally ask you out - but, hey, it made for a pretty great first date story, right?
Finding none, he sighs, barely opening his mouth to ask before she plows on, âAnd of course thereâs only so many your uncle can piggyback at once, right? No matter how much that grump says he doesnât like it.â
Right.
Of course.
Oh god, he thinks he could faint.Â
Choso doesnât dare say anything for the rest of the session, nor does he look directly in your eyes. Save for that one time to admire your delighted laugh when the fortune teller prattles on about how your kids will âfight his needy self for your attention.â
Not until the two of you are stepping back out into the too-bright mall, your fingers intertwined with his, voice sweet in his ear as you continue with your forgotten mission to find the good brownie mix for the family dinner tonight.Â
âEyes like yours and hair like mine.â You sigh, repeating what youâd heard mere minutes ago. Hooking a finger subtly into his belt loop, smirking, âSooo, five, huh? Youâre this worked up over that?â
âN-no.â Choso replies hastily, but the heavy gulp he takes is a dead giveaway he canât stop thinking about tiny combinations of the two of you running around. Face too-hot, hands jittery, brows furrowed as he decides for the second time in his life that, yeah heâs never stepping foot inside a fortune shop again.Â
You notice - of course, you do.Â
Especially when he pulls you into the nearest changing stall, knuckle-deep inside your drenched panties, rings cool against your cunt, lips kissing at your throat. Ignoring your teasing complaints about âgetting lateâ, despite how youâre letting him have his way.Â
He feels the vibration of your voice under his hot tongue, laughing - even when he gives your pretty clit a little pinch. âFive.â
And through it all, he canât help but think - hypothetically, of course, that he hopes they all have your laugh.
---
7:16PM.
Honestly, the one thing that made the Itadori residence more of a home to Choso was having you there. Even when youâre standing with him outside the front door, letting out a sigh as you glare at your sad excuse for brownies.
âUgh, Cho, we totally burnt them.â you grumble up at your boyfriend. âYour dad is gonna hate it and Sukunaâs gonna make fun of me and-â
âSukuna can try.â Choso hits the doorbell once more, sure that the ruckus inside was too loud to even think over. âAnd he probably will.â Before turning back to your adorable pout, and ah he canât stop himself from cupping your face, smoothing over that furrow in your brow. He leans in to give your lips a chaste peck, âBut, heâs still gonna steal some. Nâ dadâll love it, and you already know gramps is gonna sneak in some even though his doctor told him not to.â Heâs getting out through kisses, pulling your giggling face closer to his. âAnd weâll be lucky to get any before Itadori inhales them.â
He ends his little speech with a slow, lingering kiss. Sliding his soft lips across your now much happier ones. Dancing a hand down to pull your hips closer, murmuring throatily, âNâ most of all, Iâm gonna love âem, baby.â
You gasp at the feeling of his long fingers pressing just at the hem of your panties through your dress, âYouâre- youâre too much.â You hiss, but it comes out more breathless than you intended. âBut, the brownies really are-â
Slam!
âYeah yeah, Jin, the brats are finally here, jusâ fucking on the porch!âÂ
If thereâs anything Chosoâs learned from all the times youâve had dinner with his family, itâs that 1. Yes, the brownies - as burnt and questionable as they were - will always turn out to be a hit in the Itadori household. 2. You were really, really too perfect for your own good, even amidst the chaos.Â
âOh no, let me.â you flash Jin a beaming smile, taking over the well cleared-out plates to the kitchen. Only to be followed by an enthusiastic Yuji almost tripping over his own feet to help you out.Â
âYou got a good one there.â Choso snaps out of his soft stare to whirl around at where his grandpa was seated next to him. He tips his head over to where you were chattering animatedly with the younger boy taking your load of dishes. âReal lovely. Though, the desert Iâm assuming you helped out with.â
Jin pipes up, âBah! I thought that liquorice was great.â
âThey wereâŠbrownies.â Face burning, he stammers, knowing full well that you were the one that forgot them in the oven. âAnd uh y-yeah, you got meâŠâ
And, of course, because itâs a family dinner, Sukuna has to lean over to rile him up. Interjecting teasingly, âThen you best wife that cute lilâ thing up before those baking skills of yours make âem run off nâ find someone that can bake.â He smirks devilishly, eyes flitting to the view of the kitchen, âAndâŠâ
âAnd?â
â-is fuckinâ great with kids, too.â
Several things happen at once - the words are barely out of Sukunaâs mouth before heâs being swatted over the head. Hard. After all, being the nicer of the two doesnât make Jin Itadori forget his roots as the older brother.
And Chosoâs jaw is dropping into a soft oh! Not at the unusual display of strength, no, instead it was at the heavenly scene before him.
He swears, the lights grow just a bit brighter and the world becomes a little rosier at the sight of you teaching an eager Yuji the correct way to scrub strainers. Gently guiding the boy until that confused furrow between his brow disappears. âYeah, just a bit more on the side and youâre done!â
He gives you a very soapy high-five, âYouâre literally a lifesaver, Kugisaki was just making fun of me for this the other day.â Moving onto the rest of the workload, ââCanât do shitâ gonna show her, seriously. Thank you mom- uh-â
Yuji freezes. You freeze. And it seems that everyone in the world mightâve frozen, except for Sukuna who was still rubbing that bump on his head.Â
And you, of course, promptly cutting off the flurry of apologies that looked like they were about to burst from Itadoriâs lips. Smiling at the flustered boy softly, âWellâŠgood job, Yuji.â you bump his hip. âAnd now onto the blender.â
âAW, MAN.â
Suddenly, everything was normal again. Except for Choso - definitely not Choso.Â
Mom?Â
So utterly, completely not Choso when everyoneâs still talking downstairs, and heâs not. Making some cheap excuse about a âbathroom breakâ, which really didnât explain why he covertly drags you behind him by the hand. All but shoving you into his childhood bedroom, shutting the door as quietly as he could without alerting anyone of your tryst.Â
âCh-Cho-â you squeal when he pushes you against the wall, dropping down to his knees with a fervor that makes you wince. But if it hurt, then Choso doesnât show it - doesnât show anything but pure need when he bunches your dress up at your waist. Soft tongue darting out to glide along your drenched slit, âWhatâs gotten- hngh- into you?â
The only response you get is a murmured growl of something you canât bother deciphering. And he doesnât give you any other, either - sluggishly nudging away your panties to admire your glistening cunt.Â
So close. Just hovering over your puffy folds, smiling at the way they only get wetter at his hot breath, âFive.â
Too close. Glossy pink lips falling slack to wrap around your clit and-
KNOCK! KNOCK! KNOCK!
Though, it was more of a bang. And an even louder voice from outside, âOI, you brats better be decent, gramps found some dusty old albums nâ wants you two down.â
---
9:02PM.
âAwww, this is from his first fight with Yuji- yes, Choso so what if I took a picture?â Jin excitedly points to a photo on the page, âYuji was the one with a bruise, but Choso was the one bawling.â
You titter at the glossy picture, a confused-looking Yuji as a toddler, being smothered by his older brother in a hug - big, fat tears running down his pouty cheeks. Adorable. And somehow that encounter with the fortune teller today rings in your mind - wonder if your kids would have those same eyes?
âAs cute as ever, huh?â your gaze dances across all the gems of childhood on the page.Â
âDisagreed.â Sukuna leans over, no matter how much heâd like to pretend he wasnât interested in these albums. âLook how attached the lilâ anklebiter used to be.â A painted nail pokes at one of Choso on his uncleâs shoulders, tiny fists happily gripping onto pink hair - much to his disgruntlement. âAnd then I look over at him now and-â He glances over at the man in question, very much unamused. âWell. Thatâs disappointing.â
Choso rolls his eyes, âWhatâs disappointing is how youâre this old but still canât find a-âÂ
âOoo look this is from when heâd run away during bath time!â
That album is snatched so fast out of Jinâs hands that you wonder whether it might just be your imagination. But you look over at a red-faced Choso, seeing him hold it way above your heads. Muttering out a hasty, âI think thatâs enough photo time.â
Amidst the collective groans of disappointment - even Sukuna lets out a low huff, you hadnât gotten to those ugly matching Halloween costume pictures yet - only Yuji speaks up, âDo you think Iâd be like that, too?â
Sukuna scoffs, âWhat? An emo bastard? Might just work out for ya, kid, the dumbass look isnât doing you any favors.â
Yuji juts his chin in indignance, âNo- we already have Fushiguro for that.â Tilting his head over to the album still tight in Chosoâs clutches. âDo you think your kids would like me? Would I be that cool favorite family member?â
âNo way, brat. Itâll be me.â
Chosoâs grandpa also chimes in as well, âHuh? No, Iâd be the favorite.â
âGramps-â
âSays who?â
âDISRESPECT TO YOUR ELDERS!â
âHey!â Everything turns to Choso, startled at his sudden outburst. Tension crackling as he pokes a thumb at his chest, âIâd be their favorite. For all five of them.â
And you knew a fist or two to be thrown, hell, you half-expected the album to be used as some type of weapon. Because before you knew it, Sukuna was on Yuji, and both Yuji and Choso were on Sukuna. Falling to the floor in a tangled pile while his grandpa sat on the sidelines, chanting an elated, âFight! Fight! Fight!â
Ah, itâs times like this that you wonder how Jin Itadori really had the patience. Because with all the grace that was lacking in the current scuffle on the living room floor, he claps his hands loudly. âAlright. Perhaps Chosoâs right, thatâs enough photo time for tonight.â He plucks the album out of a dazed Choso still gripping onto it, before moving to walk out. âAnd for the record-â Flashing you all a devious smile which suddenly had you remember that shit, him and Sukuna were twins, after all. â-Iâd be the favorite.â
The arguments that followed were ones you had to record on your phone to giggle at later. And, yet, through it all, the only thing you could truly focus on were Chosoâs words - all five of them.
Fuck. You were truly, irrevocably so fucked, and one sideglance at the pretty pink blush burning at the tips of Chosoâs ears told you he wasnât faring any better.Â
You jolt when his hand wraps around your waist - nothing out of the ordinary - but what was was the way he strayed past their usual perch at your hip, trailing slightly above to just caress your stomach. Something so electric in those eyes when they catch yours briefly.Â
All five of them, huh?
---
9:37PM.Â
SLAM!
âCho, whyâd you-â
âShut up.â
You donât know whatâs hitting you first - his lips crashing against yours, or the realization that this was Choso. Dark eyes half-lidded, skin burning, breaths heaving with the fervor he was drinking you in with.Â
âWhat-â you yelp when he pulls away lazily to suck on your lower lip. âWhat got-â Only to come clashing back down again, drawing out all the air in your lungs as he blindly shoves the two of you against the nearest wall. âWhat got into you this- mmpf-â And again itâs like Choso didnât want you to talk - could bare another word in your sweet voice for fear of poking some deep, visceral part of himself awake.Â
This time, not even daring to break the kiss, he pants into your open mouth, âShut up.â So bruisingly sloppy, âPlease.â
And oh he was so very determined to have it that way, because all you can do is let out breathless gasps when his hands dance down your body. Handling you so rough with the way he snaps the neckline of your cute lilâ dress, kneading your breasts, your hips. Everywhere and anywhere he could reach until he makes his way down to cup your already-damp cunt through your panties. â-because tonight mâgonna have her talking.â
Choso pushes his hips against yours with a strained grunt. Lips curling into a sinful leer when all you can do is gasp at the outline of his thick erection through his pants. Grinding down onto his palm subconsciously, dragging your sloppy pussy.Â
âShit.â Choso immediately brings his hand up to admire - now all glistening with a sheen of your syrupy slick. Looking you right in your glassy eyes as he pops a wet finger into his mouth. His own rolling to the back of his head, âOh shit.â
Oh, he was going to enjoy this. So very, very much.
âTurns outâŠâ he trails off, cutting himself off by dropping to his knees. Hard. Large hands groping your ass closer to his greedy mouth, â-she says we got some unfinished business.â
You whine when Choso hooks an index underneath the mound of your drenched panties sliding it along your puffy folds. All the way up until he was nudging at your pretty clit, then down, down, down until you were just coating his fingers.Â
âNgh- Cho-â your knees weaken, when his hot breath hits your pussy. And he notices - of course he does. Circling his muscled arms around your legs to hold you up, âOh my god sâtoo much.â
Too much? Heâs barely even getting started. And he tells you that - slurs it between his sharp canines biting down on the thin fabric of your panties. He tugs with his teeth, âMâgonna- fuck you smell so heavenly- mâgonna ruin you.âÂ
You whimper in disbelief. Knowing he was too entranced with your cunt to tease you again, you mewl, âWh-whatâs got you this- fuck- worked up, Cho?â
The only response you get is a throaty growl - like the mere idea of the answer to that has Choso losing his sanity.Â
And, honestly he feels like heâs lost it already. Instead, taking his time to watch the way your slick beads through the see-through fabric with each passing second. Breaths coming out in little puffs as he pulls your panties back every-so-slightly and-
âFuck!â
And then heâs pulling - ripping your poor panties to shreds. Cock twitching wildly at the strings of slick connecting your pussy to the fabric. Mouthwatering.Â
Your panties lay in tatters on the floor. The cold air hitting you right along with his steady stream of saliva. Once. Twice. Smearing it across your folds with his thumbs as Choso repeats a single, jagged whisper, âFive.â
But you barely even have the time to register his response before heâs diving nose-deep into your dripping cunt. You donât even know if he took the time to breathe - hell, he was kissing your puffy folds like he didnât need to breathe.Â
âShouldnât have taken me to ngh- that fortune shop.â his lips mesh sloppily with yours. âShouldnât have gone to dinner, too.â Licking down your folds, the cold metal of his piercing making your head spin. âFuckkk we shouldnât have. Ohhh we shouldnât have- â
He canât help but let out a guttural, fucked-out little grunt at the sight. Looking right up into your glassy eyes as the tip of his nose bumps against your throbbing clit. On purpose.Â
You buck your hips deeper into his pretty face, mewling. âO-oh. Fuck- fuck fuck fuck-â Letting him lick so filthily all over your clit - your folds - just barely dipping into your hole like he couldnât decide. And it finally sets in that just maybe you werenât getting off easy this time. âFive?â
And fuck you can feel the way Choso grins against your pussy, wrapping his now-glossy lips around your clit to suck so harshly.
âMhmmm.â he moans, cheeks hollowing as he tugs on your poor, ravaged clit. Rolling his tongue - the ball of his piercing - right across the sensitive bud in just the way he knew you liked. âShouldnât have put those thoughts in my head, baby.â
Oh.
Oh, shit. Five.Â
You definitely werenât making it out alive today.
The same sentiment seems to ring in Chosoâs pussydrunk head as he pulls away with a lewd squelch to grin up at you. So fucking pretty with his eyes miles away, hair messily framing his smudged eyeliner. Lips all puffy and glistening, your slick covering the lower half of his face, his chin - some even on his jaw like Choso was trying to get messy on purpose. âYa finally got it, baby? I could feel her gettinâ wetter.â
You did. How could you not?
You jump when Choso reattaches his lips, this time bullying his tongue past your folds, into that first, feeble ring of resistance. Stretching out your sopping entrance on his tongue in persistent, rough pushes. âSeems she hngh- really likes the idea, hm? Of me breeding this lilâ cunt?â he moans, muffled with the way he was thrusting his tongue deeper and deeper with each second. Roaming for those cute sensitive spots he knew so well, âNâ who am I to say no to the fuck- mother of my kids?â
âThere! Oh my god there-â you cry when his piercing just hits at your g-spot. âI-I thought you ngh- didnât want kids, Choââ
As if to prove you wrong, Chosoâs only curling his tongue deeper into your walls. Squeezing past your walls to fuck you exactly the way he wanted to with his aching cock right now. Hitting that magic spot again and again and-
âOh yeah? Seems-â Like he was fucking addicted, Choso surges forward again. And again. And again and again so deep that you could feel the curve of his chin, each and every movement of his jaw. âSeems the last five hours were a bit- eye-opening. Fuck- youâre squeezinâ me sâfucking- mmf- tightâ
And it was true - your walls were milking Chosoâs tongue so hard you half-lucidly wondered whether it didnât hurt. Whether his tongue wasnât cramping up at this point, lips aching.Â
But if they did, then Choso acted the exact opposite. Nails leaving neat little patterns on the plush of your hips as he makes you ride his face harder.Â
âCho!â you buck your hips wildly when that wasnât enough for your needy boyfriend either. Big, fat tears of overstimulation rising up to your eyes when he swipes his thumb across your pulsing clit. Rings cold against your cunt when he starts to draw urgent, messy little circles in time with his tongue.âOh fuck-âÂ
âFive.â heâs spitting into your cunt when your thighs start trembling beside his head. Jaw sagging open so lewdly as he gets faster - sloppier. Fuck any rhythm or reason. âFive.â he moans, sounding as strained as you felt - as taut as a tightrope right now with each drag of your sloppy cunt over Chosoâs ravenous mouth. Greedier - letting your slick run all the way down his wrist now with how messy he was getting. âFive.â he whispers, when you finally cum.Â
And shit, youâre such a vision when you do. Tears springing to your eyes, fingers tightening on Chosoâs hair. Letting out such cute sobs of his name, hips moving out of control all over his mouth while he still pulls and pushes his tongue into your gummy walls. Fucking you so obscenely through your high.Â
âYeah? You all done with the first one, baby?â he rasps, giving your sensitive cunt one, last peck at your delirious nod - and another extra, just to watch you squirm. âThen-â Choso does the same up your body, pressing his lips to your stomach, â-you can-â the valley of your breasts. â-take responsibility.â
Thatâs all it takes for Choso to easily throw you onto his sculpted shoulders like some ragdoll. Taking long, urgent steps towards the nearest flat surface - that just so happened to be your couch.Â
âCho- slow-â you squeal when he throws you onto the cushions. â-down.â
And he does anything but. Barely paying attention to your zipper when he pulls off whateverâs left of your dress, throwing it god-knows-where behind him. âIâll buy you a new one when we go pregnancy shopping.â
Choso lets out a long, strained groan when he unbuckles your bra. âGonna be so pretty as a mama.â Large, soft hands coming to knead and guide your pretty nipples into his mouth, âGonna be- fuck- so pretty with these all full.âÂ
And you can only watch, jaw-dropped, as Choso sucks on your tits. Eyes rolling to the back of his head with how harsh he was - as if he was trying to get out milk. Needing to feel it - to taste it on his tongue.Â
âAnd this- oh this-â A hand sneaks its way down to splay out over your stomach. Pressing down, hard. âSo round and full with my kid.â He manages to grit out over the metal clinking of his belt, âTheyâll look at you and all theyâll see is me.â He pauses, feeling something crinkle in his pocket - a shiny condom. One that Choso chucks along with your dress, âFuck, theyâll see me. Know how I ruined you. Me me me me-â
Fuck-Â
Youâre so caught up in Chosoâs sinful little mutters that you barely even noticed heâd pull down his pants - just enough for his rock-hard erection to spring free. And he looked so painfully hard, such an angry red at his weeping tip, leaking all the way down, down, down those prominent veins.Â
Twitching upwards at the mere sound of your voice, âWhy donât you p-prove it then, Cho?â
You broke him. You were sure you broke him.Â
The words have barely left your lips before Chosoâs fist is squeezing at the drenched base of his cock. Angry. Desperate.Â
All but cumming on the spot when he glides his fat head along your slit - letting your cunt drool all over him before-
âF-fuck-â
âShhh baby, I know I know.â his mouth crashes against yours in a messy, open-mouthed kiss. Sucking on your tongue while he bullies his massive cock into your snug cunt. Inch by fucking inch. And whateverâs remaining of Chosoâs sanity knows he should slow down, let you breathe, maybe stretch you out more - but how could he when he physically canât. âFuck- too- too good. God, I have t-to do this more often.â
Your raw cunt too heavenly that he genuinely canât stop his hips from splitting you apart deeper, from spreading your thrashing legs so far apart it burned.
From feeling the way youâre torn between taking more and flattening your feet to push away- Letting out a strangled groan, âNo no no no no- donât you take this pussy away. How else will I breed her?â He runs his delirious mouth, strong arms just dragging you across the couch back onto his mean cock. âNeed this- need this so bad. Fuck-â Choso throws his head back as your cunt sucks up his leaky tip. â-oh god think mâgonna die if I donât get to breed this pretty pussy. To give her my kid.â
Pushing in small, sharp jabs to bully himself inside, having your puffy folds bulge so obscenely around his cock. Quivering and struggling to take him all. Not even a quarter of the way in yet he was pushing in and out in and out in and-
âOh- please-â you claw down his toned back, his waist, onto the biceps that were pushing your knees up for easier access, all the way until they were at your tits. Folding you into a tight mating press, âChoââ
Ah, that little nickname always did things to him. And Choso nuzzles the crook of your neck gently - the exact opposite of his hips, leaving faint, dark streaks of eyeliner on your skin. âWhat is it? What do you hngh- want, baby? Iâll give ya anything.â
And maybe you were a mastermind. Maybe you were an idiot. Because you hum into his ear, sending goosebumps rising down your boyfriendâs spine, âWanâ five of them.â
If you thought you broke him before then you fucking ruined him now.
Because in one, harsh thrust heâs bottoming out - feeling like he was pushing all the way into your lungs, your hazy brain. And the stretch - fuck. You could feel each and every dip and curve of Chosoâs girth, thrumming against your plushy walls. Still pushing inside you despite bottoming out, stretching you out like such a slut.Â
It was all Choso could do to echo, over and over like some type of mantra. âFinally- Five, huh? Five- Fuck!â Leaving little bruises on your thighs from spreading them apart so hard. âGonna give you five- fuck- five.â
Each word was punctuated by a long, mean thrust, not daring to reel back until Choso could feel his fat head kiss your poor cervix, and his heavy balls smack against your ass.Â
It was starting to take a toll on your ability to speak in coherent sentences - as expected, of course.Â
âOh- ngh- Cho, sâtoo deep. Too- ah-â you blubber tearily, heels digging into his shoulders. And he only fucks you harder into the couch. Bouncing you so rough on his swollen cock.Â
âToo deep?â Choso mutters, sounding genuinely surprised. As if to confirm for himself, he trails up a hand to feel for where he knew he was leaving loving little marks on your cervix. Pressing down. âHow are ya- hah- how are ya gonna let me breed this cute cunt if even this is too deep, huh?â
You donât have the ability to answer even if you wanted to - because Choso starts to toy with your still-sensitive clit. Sending flashes of white-hot pleasure with each roll of his ringed thumb over it. Tiny, incessant circles.
He coos over your lewd ah! ah! ah! âAwww. My baby canât s-speak anymore?â. The curve of his dick fucking you so dumb, massaging your tight walls, hitting sweet spots you didnât even know you had. âSâalright, jusâ let me hah- take care of it, okay? Jusâ let me paint this oh- heavenly pussy white.â Chosoâs knees dig into the cushion as he angles his hips ever-so-slightly to hit that one-
âFuck! Oh fuck- Choââ
Found it.
âCâmon, baby.â Choso moans into the valley of your breasts, hips out of control now. Free hand coming up to squish your cheeks together, forcing you to peer into his dark gaze. âL-look at me. Fuck- look at the future father to your kids.â
All while his thick tip hit your g-spot over and over and-Â
And oh how he loved how fucked-out you looked already. Capable of only giving him bleary, cockdrunk heart-eyes as he milks himself on your sloppy cunt. He couldnât think straight - doesnât think heâs been able to since five hours ago.Â
Since heâs been wrecked with thoughts of how heâd do their hair and youâd pick them up from school. And how Yuji would be the best uncle and- Fuck, how he wanted those five kids with you - maybe even more-Â
âMore?â you gasp. And Choso lets out a guttural groan when you clench so sinfully around him in surprise. Fucking you so filthy, âM-more kids?â
Choso only drawls out a low, âMhmmmm.â Pinching your clit faster between two fingers to shut up those cute whines because shit- he could cum from just how tight you were squeezing him. But refuses to before the mother of his kids. âYa donâ ngh- wanâ me to? Donâ want me to fuck a baby into you?âÂ
Youâre crying out harder when he speeds up. Rocking your sloppy cunt so harshly, making sure your poor pussy will remember him for a long, long time. Just trying - needing - to make himself cum. To fill you up with his seed till you canât take it anymore. âI- ngh- do!â
And it takes everything in Choso to pull away from your ravaged tits, connecting his sweaty forehead with yours. Whispering, âHow many?â
âAs- fuck-â
âMhm?â
âAs many as you want- hngh-â
Thatâs all it takes for Chosoâs body to bow, teeth digging in right above that rapid pulse on your neck so hard you wondered whether it drew blood. Hips stuttering, giving your sensitive spot one last, harsh kiss.
This time, when you cum you see white flashes behind your eyes - or maybe that was just Choso. Because the sight of you falling apart on his dick was all it takes for him to as well. Hard. Almost painfully so.Â
Eyeliner running down his cheeks now with each thick, hot rope of seed he was filling your snug cunt up with. Those cushions below the two of you the last thing on his mind right now as he holds your trembling hips still, fucking his cum deeper and deeper.
The hand on your stomach pushes down, watching awe-struck at how your bloated cunt just coats him in cum. Dribbling down the side of your puffy folds, forming a creamy ring at his base.
âOh!â your jaw falls slack at how animalistic it felt. At how slutty your overfilled pussy felt, drooling all down your legs - and his. Onto Chosoâs painfully squeezing balls as he fucks you like an animal. Again. And again and-
Again. He was speeding his hips up again.Â
Then itâs like something snaps - Chosoâs restraint, your sanity, and the couch. Fuck, his hips were so harsh that the couch was sagging entirely too much on your end.
This time, wrangling your legs around Chosoâs waist, lifting your limp body up into Chosoâs arms before you can react - squirming at the way he still doesnât bother to pull out. Letting your cum gush all the way down his still-hard dick.Â
Hands spreading your puffy folds apart, making such a mess of cum down below as he drags himself across your walls. Like he was marking you from the inside out - and he was.
âDidnât think we were ngh- done, did you?â Chosoâs lips graze your swollen ones. âAfter all, I did promise five.â Softly pooling a stray tear onto his tongue, piercing burning into your heated skin. âNâ we gotta practice for that, too, right?â
---
âThe photo albums, really? Honestly, dad, you might as well have just gone and just outright told them.â
The older man only waves a hand dismissively, turning back to his favorite late-night show, âIâm not getting any younger here. Nâ Iâd like to see some grandkids before I see the pearly gates.â
Jin only sighs, but doesnât disagree - after all, he couldnât deny his father what he himself has been dreaming about ever since Choso finally plucked up the courage to actually ask you out. Yet he persists, âBut honestly, Sukuna - you were teasing him a bit too much.â
Sukuna grunts, âTeasing? What teasing?â Crossing two big arms across his chest, âFrom the way they ran outta here, I suspect he should be thanking me.â
âWell, the true MVP - as the kids say - is this one-â Grandpa Itadori points at a rather oblivious Yuji. âReal nice improv to the plan, kid.â
Who only shakes his head before looking around the room for any answers, âHuh, wait. What plan? Did I miss some plan?â
âAhem- no. Nothing.â Jin coughs, swiftly moving along the conversation above Yujiâs confused protests about what secret plan there was and why. âBut, really, it should be that fortune teller you hired, Sukuna. Bit over-the-top honestly, but Choso was telling me all about her and you mustâve gotten a real convincing actress.â
Rolling his eyes, âHuh, I didnât hire her, I thought that was the olâ manâs work?â
âNow why would I go looking for actresses, my wife would just haunt me from the grave.â
The silence that follows is a heavy one as it slowly dawns upon everyone in the room - except for a still-floundering Yuji - that this was in no way a creative improvisation to the aforementioned plan. Not at all, really.
Oh.Â
Wow. FiveâŠreally?!
âGUYS WHAT WAS THE PLAN?â
A/N. This got wayyyyyy longer than I expected lmao.
Plagiarism not authorized.
#choso x reader#choso smut#choso x you#jjk x reader#jjk smut#jjk x you#choso kamo x reader#choso kamo smut#choso kamo x you#jujutsu kaisen x reader#jujutsu kaisen smut#jujutsu kaisen x you#jjk#jjk fic#jujutsu kaisen#choso#tonywrites#choso kamo
13K notes
·
View notes
Text
.
#hfffffff okay i spent fucking hours rambling in that ao3 comment lmao i wanted to apologize for that but#i dont wanna give the author a reason to reply or guilt them into reading the whole thing lol#i hate having anxiety#bc it means sometimes i cant be like 'haha that was hot' without feeling like im not doin my job as a reader#but then when i start writing a longer comment i gotta give reasons why i liked something#and before u know it im typing my whole lifes story and thats a book no one wants to read. least of all in the comments on their 50k fic#i took out so many paragraphs and revised it no less than 20 times but probably more i wasnt counting#i dont think ive ever put a comment that long but it required backstory to explain something and also how i was surprised at#...being sold in the first chapter when i was already predisposed to not wanna read the fic in the first place#god its fucking 130am ive been typing for hours#sleep has not occurred to me bc ive been in 'middle of a task' mode since like 8pm#anxiety really is a motherfucker lmao ughhhhhhh#fuckin verbose as hell lmao hate that abt myself no one wants to read my essays lol#shouldve spent at least 3 of those hours workin on my fics but alas i have time blindess and only saw 2 time jumps#anyway gonna hope my sleeping pills kick in fast#lol its probably pain. the reason why im so on edge for the past few days and especially today since i couldnt really relax#i hate being so anxious all the time but what can i do lol nothing has helped me long term#oh here we fucking go lmao im writing another essay in the tags yeah i gotta hit the pen or something to chill or the pills aint gonna help#delete later / /#i swear i dont mean to but i blink and ive written an essay it happens without doing it consciously
0 notes
Text
it was always you.
for as long as you remember, youâve always had the fattest crush on your childhood friend, jeon jungkook. it never blossomed into something more though, because thatâs what happens when life naturally takes it courseâyou grow up, you move on, and you pretend that those feelings never existed in order to maintain the good friendship that remained between the two of you over the years.
so when he visits you after work one day, asking you to marry him, you do everything you can to refuse, because the reason heâs asking you isnât due to the fact that he finally realized that he loved you after all this time, but because he thinks heâs doing you a big favor.
or at least, thatâs what you think.
pairing: jungkook x reader
word count: 13.2k
rating: 18+
content: fluff, semi-angst, childhood friends to lovers au, pining au | ft. naval aviator!jungkook + brotherâs best friend!jungkook; professor!reader + editor!reader | inspired by purple hearts
warning/s: swearing, potentially wrong medical & military information (iâm sorry but i tried to do as much research i can đ), mentions of having type 1 diabetes, making out, heavy petting, implied sexual content: oral (f. receiving), fingering, penetrative sex, unprotected sex (this is only fiction!)
MINI PLAYLIST: â« die with a smile â lady gaga, bruno mars â« juno â sabrina carpenter â« selfish â *nsync â« nandito na ako â benj pangilinan, angela ken
opening note. omg this is my first full length fic in two damn years i think??? certainly took a long time before i had the motivation to write again but i hope y'all like this! to my og readers who still keep up with my shenanigans, this one's for you đ„čđ
âAny questions?â
A boy wearing half-rimmed glasses raises his hand and you gesture for him to speak. âCan we get an extension on the Save the Cat project due tomorrow?â
You sigh, just as several of your students begin agreeing with him and muttering reasons of their own why the extension should be approved. Itâs the week before finals, and youâre aware that the class must be packed with assignments and projects for several of their classes because of it, hence the rather last minute request. They look tired and pleading, a complete reflection of how you were when you were the one in their position nearly a decade ago, begging for an extension from a professor who you thought was kind enough to be swayed with the proposition.
You scan the crowd. âHow many of you are at least 70% with it, hm?â
More than half of the class raises their hands.
âOkay, thatâs honestly unexpected,â you say, pleased to know that they arenât slacking on your subject. âDoes Monday sound good? Thatâs three more days, to be fair. I donât want to extend it further because I have to read everyoneâs work and you guys know I donât like rushing it before turning in your final grade.â
A chorus of relief and thanks echoed in the room, all of your students either dramatically sinking in their chair or erupting in an animated conversation with their seatmate or making crying faces to portray how grateful they are.
âThank you so much, Ms. ____!â
âI love you, Ms. ____!â
âMs. ____, I will offer my first child to you,â one theatrically adds and you smile a bit, rolling your eyes at students like this one who is now opting to flatter you way too much for your act of kindness.
âAlright, alright. Just get it done and Iâm expecting quality work, okay? Class dismissed.â
The whole class begins to gather their things at the cue and you donât stay there a minute longer after your announcement, exiting the lecture hall to head to the faculty room where youâre certain half of the teaching staff have gone home already. Itâs already 8:47 p.m., and all you want to do is head home to get the rest you deserve after an eventful day.
There was a time that having a schedule from 6 p.m. to 9 p.m. wasnât the norm for you. You used to value work life balance so muchâit was even a nonnegotiable you used to say in interviews, saying that if you didnât get enough rest within the week, then the job most likely wasnât for you. But things have been very different for the past months; you have definitely grown out of that mindset due to the fact that youâre simply in need of another source of income to pay for your monthly rent, utility bills, and now your medication. Youâre in a stage of your life wherein you consider working part time as a professor was a blessing rather than a big nuisance.
Making a right turn to where the hallway to the faculty room is, youâre too busy rearranging the papers inside the folder youâre holding to notice a man sitting on the bench placed just beside the entrance. He notices you the second you appear in his line of vision though; he straightens his posture and proceeds on standing up immediately upon seeing you closer, calling your name softly when you failed to look at his direction, too preoccupied with the thought of finally coming home that youâre oblivious that the man trying to catch your attention is Jeon Jungkook.
â____,â he calls again and this time you notice him, your eyes widening instantly.
âHoly shiââ You stop yourself from finishing that sentence. âJungkook?â
He grins. âHey, lamb chop.â
âWhat the hell are you doing here?â
âIs that how you greet an old friend?â
âOh, fuck off.â
He laughs, following suit to you whoâs already giggling just by his presence alone, outstretching his arms then. âYou gonna hug me or what?â
You beam and step forward to embrace him. He returns it without hesitation, muscular arms circling around you and squeezing tightly that it lifts you up from the ground for a quick second. The faint smell of fabric conditioner on his clothes enters your nostrils and you feel like a teenager again, warmth rushing to your face while your heart hammers loudly in your chest. Regardless of how old the both of you are, you think your hopeless crush on the guy will forever live on and constantly transform you into a middle school girl whenever opportunities like these to have him near arise. Youâre just happy youâve trained yourself to be better at hiding it now compared to when you were younger.
âArenât you supposed to be in base or wherever it is that youâre designated?â you ask, the first to let go from the hug.
âActually, I returned from deployment three days ago. Iâm on leave for two weeks.â
âWow. Two weeks, huh?â
âYep. Itâs the longest break Iâve gotten in a while.â
âThatâs good. Everybody needs a break from time to time.â
âSays the girl has a day job and a night job.â He points out with a smirk; your heart does a little leap at how handsome he looks doing that. âWhen the hell did you get into teaching, by the way? I never pegged you to be the kind who can tolerate it. You hate kids.â
âYouâll find yourself tolerating lots of things in this economy.â You snort. âAnd my students arenât kids. Theyâre in college.â
âYeah, which you graduated from six years ago. Still technically kids.â
âAre you seriously jabbing at my age when youâre two years older than I am?â
He rolls his eyes at that one, an indication that you won the argument. âAnyway,â he starts again and you grin, âI didnât come here to compare how old we areââ
âYou didnât?â
He sends you a look. Your grin gets even wider.
âIâm here because I was hoping to treat you to dinner.â
âDinner?â you repeat, not masking the surprise from your voice.
Letâs get the facts straight before we proceed to this conversation.
It isnât a lie when you say that you and Jungkook are great friends. You have been since you were 7 and your family just moved into the house next to theirs. He was a natural playmate, a companion when you couldnât tolerate the antics of your older brother, the boy who looked out for you aside from said older brother, and the person youâve shared significant history with throughout your youth that you can never seem to forget nor disregard.
Itâs just that you never deemed that you were great enough friends for him to go out of his way and visit you at your workplace, offering to treat you for dinner. Gestures like that were reserved for your older brother, Seowon, whoâs the same age as he is and who youâre sure is considered as his best friend. Compared to them, yours and Jungkookâs dynamic shifted slightly after graduating from college. What once was a really close friendship turned into a casual one, with mostly just teasing, light talks, and the occasional welfare checks at times you hear certain news from the other thatâs worth speaking directly about.
At the mention of that, realization dawns on you on why he must be here.
âJungkookâŠâ Youâre trying not to sound mad but you canât hide the exasperation from your voice. âThatâs not the real reason youâre here.â
âOf course, it is. Why else would I be here?â
âHe told you, didnât he?â you ask, not willing to drag this out. âYouâre just going to give me another lecture that I definitely donât need.â
Jungkook frowns, like heâs dismayed that you caught on pretty swiftly.
âIâm right, arenât I?â You pressed.
âHe meant well, ____.â
You scowl. To remark that Seowon is unnecessarily nosy and coddling would be an understatement. That man hasnât left you alone the second he was aware of your condition. Usually, whenever he gets into his âbig brother tendenciesâ, his girlfriend Winnie steps in and helps you lay him off your back. However, itâs different this time; no matter how much you reinstill your independence and insist that youâre fine, itâs like youâre talking to a wall.
âWhat exactly did you hear from him?â you query.
He seems hesitant in answering that. âThat you got diagnosed with type 1 diabetes.â
You wince.
âLook,â he steps forward towards you, âI wasnât going to bring it up unless you did, okay? Iâm just here because Iâm genuinely worried about you and I want to know how youâre doing.â
âIâm fine.â You murmur. âYou donât need to worry.â
âWorry doesnât vanish magically just because someone says so.â
âWell, it shouldâbecause Iâm fine.â
âYou sure? I heard that youâre struggling to buy insulin among other things youâre having a hard time paying.â
âFuck. Seowon told you that too? Thatâs private.â
âMy parents know. He just filled me in because he wants you to have as much support as you can get.â
âI donât need that. Iâm an adult. Iâve lived by myself for years. I can fend for myself just fine.â
âIt doesnât look like it from what Iâve been hearing.â
âAll youâre hearing is a warped and exaggerated version of the story told by Seowon who wonât listen to a word I say.â You huff. âIâm fine and Iâve been doing everything I can, alright? Iâm taking care of myself. Iâm going to the doctor whenever I need to. Iâm making ends meet, buying treatment for this goddamn disease and regulating my sugar levels all the fucking time. Why do you think Iâve been working two jobs for the past year? Itâs because Iâm doing everything I can to stay alive.â
Jungkook doesnât reply, he only remains gazing at you.
âIf youâre here to offer me money or whatever because of what he said,â you add, already embarrassed that you canât even look at him anymore, âthen I donât want it.â
âThatâs not what Iâm here for,â he says.
âThen are you really just here to treat me to dinner?â you question sarcastically.
He laughs and you dare return your eyes at him, catching him peering at you with a fond expression. âYes. Itâs my way of doing a welfare check.â
âWelfare check.â You echo with squinted eyes. âWell, in that case, here I amâalive and healthy.â
âI can see that, and Iâm glad.â He smiles. âBut I need more than just seeing you. I need a conversation and an apology.â
âAn apology?â
âFor being the last person to know about your condition.â
âAnd weâre still talking about that apparently.â You mutter under your breath. âSorry. I didnât think that you wanted to know.â
âOf course, I would have wanted to know. Itâs you weâre talking about here.â
Something about how he said you causes your lips to twitch as you fight off a smile. This isnât a good time to dive into your romantic feelings for your childhood crush, but when heâs letting go of lines like that which are sure to have your heart soaring out of your chest, itâs hard to keep on a cool and unfazed facade. You just convince yourself that he sees you as a little sister and thatâs why heâs so worried; you should already be past your âdeluluâ phase at this age to be affected by such statements.
âI didnât want to add to your worries,â you reason. âYou already have your life to think about. Add to the fact that youâre a naval aviatorâso you literally have your own life first to think about.â
âI can make space for you.â
Is he flirting? Is this a normal thing to say between friends?
You blink. âOkay, uh, thatâs⊠thatâs completely up to you, I guess.â
âI just like knowing those things first hand. It makes me worry less.â
âGot it. Next time I learn Iâm dying, Iâll tell you.â
â____,â he says your name in warning, and you know heâs serious.
âSorry.â You heat up. âI couldnât resist.â
âDonât be a pain in the ass.â
âI promise thatâll be the last time I make a dark joke, Lieutenant.â
Jungkookâs nostrils flare. You prevent yourself from grinning like a fool again in success of getting on his nerves.
âAre you done here? Because Iâm hungry and would really like to get going now.â He changes the subject and gestures to the faculty.
âYeah. Iâll just get my things and then I can get out of here.â
âGreat. Youâre letting me take you to dinner, right?âÂ
âDo I have a choice?â
âNo.â
âFine.â You deadpan.
This time, heâs the one whoâs beaming at you. âIâll wait for you here and we can go.â
âOkay.â
****
When Jungkook discovered that you had type 1 diabetes through a phone call with Seowon, he spent the rest of the night staring at the ceiling, ignoring the snores of his squadmates and overthinking whatâs supposed to happen to you now that you had an autoimmune disease which he was told didnât have a cure. He was assured that you were okay despite it, that there was medication to treat it, and that you had access to them and have been very careful with your lifestyle due to the diagnosis ever since.
He still couldnât be put to ease though. As ridiculous as it may sound, he had this overwhelming realization that life truly was short, that you had to make certain decisions all the time because you need to adjust to what the universe is only willing to give you. It was funny coming from a person who risked his life for a living. He thinks that perhaps he never understood the philosophy of the quote âtime is goldâ until he had a loved one on the same trajectory, always one step closer to possible death.
And so that same night, he decided to file a leave for two weeks, effective immediately after his deployment.Â
He wasnât sure what his game plan was exactly in filing that two-week leave. Was he supposed to barge in your life and force you to let him take care of you? Was he supposed to demand why you ended up having diabetes? Was he supposed to act as a big brother like your actual big brother because he was that worried about you? But if Jungkook was going to be truthful, he already had an idea on what he wanted to do in the back of his headâhe just didnât want to execute it because it was absolutely insane.
Until he heard Seowon suggest it himself when they met up at a bar to share a drink together.
âShe would never say yes,â Jungkook said, beyond doubt that you wonât be persuaded that easily with a plan like that.
Seowon made a face. âI know. That girl is so hyper independentâsheâd rather die than accept help.â He scoffed. âShe needs it though. Itâll help with her medication and she wonât have to pay rent for that shit apartment sheâs living in. Plus, she'll actually get the chance to take care of her body if sheâs not juggling two jobs to have sufficient income.â
âYouâre right.â Jungkook shrugged.
âYouâll do it then?â
He took a sip of his beer. âYeah. Iâd do anything for ____, you know that.â
âEven as crazy as marrying her?â
âSure.â
Seowon stared at him, narrowing his eyes and morphing his expression into a teasing one. âAre you sure youâre not just considering this because itâs a perfect excuse to marry my sister? I know you like her.â
âI donât like her.âÂ
âYouâre in love with her.â
âI donâtââ Jungkook began to deny but Seowon was staring him down. âFuck you, man. Donât make me some kind of pervert whoâs trying to lock her into marriage because he likes her. Youâre the one who brought the idea up.â
Seowon laughed out loud. âI know, I just canât believe youâd agree. Itâll benefit ____, thatâs for sureâyou, on the other hand? Itâs career suicide.â
He shrugged. âIâm okay with the thought that sheâll be okay.â
âBecause you love her, man.â Seowon pushed. âWhy on earth would you consider this if you werenât? Itâs a fraudulent marriage. Youâll be thrown in the brig and be dishonorably discharged if you get caught.â
âWe donât even know if sheâll agree to this whole thing. You said it yourself, she would never say yes.â
âYeah, unless maybe youâre the one who tries to persuade her.â
âMe?â
âYes.â
âDo you want me to buy her a ring and kneel down before her or something?â
âThat can work.â
âWhat?â Jungkook laughed.
Seowon raised an eyebrow. âDonât tell me you donât know how sheâs been crushing on you since we were kids.â
He barked out a laugh again. That he knew; it was impossible not to when a lot of friends and cousins kept on teasing you before, especially at instances Jungkook was in the very same vicinity. âWeâre not kids anymore and I barely see her though.â
âStill, it ought to count to something. It raises the chances of her agreeing.â
âYouâre really cool with me marrying your sister, Won?â Jungkook asked.
Seowon placed down the beer bottle heâs consuming on the counter. âYeah. Youâre a good guy. Youâre not perfect, but I know you enough to know that you wonât do anything that will purposely hurt her. Besides, if this sham marriage ends up to be a real relationship and then for some reason, you fuck up and decide to break her heartâIâll easily know what to do, where to find you, and then Iâll do everything I can to fuck you up.â
Jungkook pressed his lips together to stifle a chuckle.
âNoted.â
****
Itâs always been a big wonder to you how no matter how long itâs been since you saw each other, it still feels like no time has passed between you and Jungkook. You think thatâs why you can never get over him; he always had this comforting and familiar aura that you appreciateâsomething that you sought for in every other person that you liked. Maybe it was impractical, maybe it was the reason you can never hold a relationship for more than two years, but unless you gain the courage to confront your feelings and tell Jungkook about it, then you constantly dispel any doubts you might have whether this was good for you or not.
You donât want to lose him. Admitting that you harbored romantic feelings for him would just make it awkward for everyone: your brother, your family, and then his family. You donât think you can ever trade his smile, the sound of his laughter, and all the good things about him for anything in the world.Â
âAre you dating anyone?â he asks.
You choke on your drink, having just poured yourself and Jungkook a glass of water after the server arrived with the pitcher. Youâre in a Japanese restaurant near the university, aware that the cuisine was a favorite for the both of you hence why itâs what you recommended when he asked where you wanted to dine. The place is packed with people from the workforce and students; youâre thankful that you donât see any of your students within the mix.
âWeâre getting straight to it, huh?â you say.
Jungkook smirks. âIâm just making sure Iâm not upsetting a boyfriend by meeting you tonight.â
âDonât worry, youâre not upsetting anyone.â
He nods in understanding. You donât want to add more meaning to his actions for the evening but he seems glad about the information.
âHow about you?â you ask back. âAre you dating anyone?â
The ends of his mouth lift a bit upwards. âNope.â
âWhy? You donât have the time for it?â
âPrecisely.â
âIt must be really hard dating when youâre in the Navy then.â
âKinda. Weâre away a lot and stationed in different places most of the time. It can get really dangerous for us too and people donât like the stress that comes with that.â
 You bob. âDoes it get lonely?â
âSometimes, but when youâre on duty, you donât get to think about those things.â He chuckles. âBesides, I donât know if this sounds fucked up or notâbut it can get exciting. Flying a plane can be fun, you know. Not to mention that it helps when youâre surrounded by good men in your squadron.â
âYouâve always been an adrenaline junkie.â
âAnd youâve always been a scaredy-cat.â
You scoff at the declaration. âNo, Iâm not.â
âRemember when Seowon and I forced you to ride that ship in the amusement park that sways left to right and as it goes on it falls from a higher standpoint?â
âI donât know what youâre talking about.â
But you do, and Jungkook knows you do, itâs evident by how your expression is trying to feign innocence. That memory is your villain origin story; the whole pretext of why you refuse to ever visit the amusement park or ride an exhilarating ride again. Yet you canât help but recall that itâs one of the rare instances wherein you got to hold Jungkookâs hand when you two were younger, as his hand was the one you were clinging for dear life when it happened while the other was too busy slapping Seowon in irritation.
He snickers, appearing like heâs replaying the scene in his head. âWe should do that again with Seowon during my break.â
âHell no.â
âI thought you werenât a scaredy-cat?â He challenges.
âIâm not.â You give him a kittenish glare. âBut I am busy. I have to send the final manuscript of this book Iâm editing to the chief editor next week and itâs about to be finals week for my students as well.â
He fakes a shiver. âI donât know how you can do two jobs like that, ____. Truly.â
âYou work as a naval aviator so Iâd say weâre pretty even.â
The waiter arrives with your orders not long after, and you and Jungkook carry on with your conversation, jumping from topic to topic without difficulty. Youâre not certain when was the last time you saw each other like this to have so much to talk aboutâwas it last Christmas? Or was it more recent or longer than that? Nevertheless, it feels good and you find yourself blushing multiple times throughout the night, whether itâs because of how his words can have two meanings or how his eyes are staring at you so intensely whenever youâre the one whoâs talking.
You like the undivided attention, the back and forth thatâs occurring as you discourse, the subtle touches one of you does when something funny arises, how your knees are touching underneath the table. You wonder whatâs so different with this encounter that the energy feels so bizarre in a good way? As far as youâre concerned, youâre positive that youâre acting like you always have in his presenceâlively, smiley, sarcasticâand aside from the little touches of flirting here and there, Jungkookâs acting like he always has too.
When dinner was done, Jungkook offered to drive you home. You obliged, no longer in the mood to annoy him for you were tired to make the effort. Before stepping outside the restaurant however, you excused yourself to the restroom first, checking your blood sugar with the glucose meter you brought along wherever you went. Itâs a hassle but itâs necessary, largely because youâre still in the middle of saving up for the insulin pump that would help you regulate your sugar levels easier.
After administering yourself with the insulin injection you have, you spend a few more seconds inside the enclosed room. You should be past the point of feeling sorry for yourself, but itâs times like this wherein youâre with a loved one that the dejection hits and you wish that youâre in a better predicament than you are right now. Youâre close to being broke, youâre overworked, youâre somehow fatigued all the fucking timeâthose factors arenât soothing your worries at all. Itâs a miracle how you manage to keep an optimistic mind amidst everything.
âReady to go?â Jungkook smiles at you once youâre back at the table and you nod, clutching your bag tighter against your body and following him to his car.
He drives you to your place, turning the radio on, and letting it play while the both of you sit in silence. Youâre both tired and you almost even sleep during the ride. Itâs only when Jungkook gently shakes you awake that you realize that youâve arrived in front of your apartment building.
âIâll walk you up,â he insists as youâre unbuckling the seatbelt.Â
âThatâs no need, Kook.â
âOf course, it is,â he says. âIâll walk you up. Thatâs nonnegotiable.â
So, you allow him.
It takes five minutes tops to reach the door leading to your apartment. As you rummage through your bag to grab your keys, Jungkook patiently stands there, occasionally glancing around the hallway and even smiling when the old lady that resided in the same floor got out of her room to throw out the trash. He receives a smile in return which you notice and grin fondly at.
âWell, this is me.â You turn to him, done unlocking your door. âIâd invite you inside but you should probably get going. Itâs quite a long drive back home.â
âYeah.â He breathes out a chuckle. âHey, tonight was fun. It made me realize how I missed you.â
Your brain temporarily malfunctions; you force yourself to recover quickly. âMe too. I had fun tonight. Maybe we should do this again whenever youâre on a break.â
âAgreed.â
You flash him a smile. âYou can go now. Goodnight.â
Jungkook nods, however doesnât move a muscle. Heâs looking at you, like really looking at you, his eyes moving from one feature to another, as if heâs memorizing your face or having a hard time arranging the words he wants to say. You guess itâs the latter, familiar with a tongue-tied Jungkook that it takes you a few good seconds before youâre demanding why heâs impersonating a mannequin.
âThereâs something I want to say,â thatâs what he utters and you almost snort due to your assumption being right.
âOkayâŠâ The smile is still on your lips. âWhat is it?â
âPromise me you wonât get mad first.â
âWell, if youâre making me promise that then itâs probably worth being mad about.â
âItâs not as bad as you think.â
âThatâs not convincing at all.â
âItâs justâŠâ He begins and trails, biting his lower lip, âitâs⊠itâs why I went here. Why I went here to see and meet you, I mean.â
You unconsciously recoil at the revelation. Itâs certainly a rookie mistake to believe that there was no ulterior motive in Jungkook meeting you today. You just didnât reckon youâd actually be truly disappointed at thatâat the idea that he just didnât randomly decide to visit and be with you earlier until now.
You draw a long breath. âWell, I knew you werenât just feeling generous and wanted to treat me to dinner out of nowhere.â
Thereâs a pause and then he resumes. âJustâbefore I say it, you have to hear me out, okay? You have to let me explain before you berate me.â
âI canât promise that either.â
âYou have to.â
âWhy do I have to?â
âBecause what Iâm about to say is for your own sake. You know I always have your best interest at heart, donât you?â
You wrinkle your forehead in further confusion. âCan you just get on with it? The vagueness is making me more annoyed.â
âI just donât want you to misunderstand.â
âMisunderstand what?â
âWhat Iâand Seowonâgenuinely think is the best option.â
âOh, and Seowon is in on this too?â You bellow. âHave you and Seowon just been conspiring behind my back the whole time?â
âCalm down.â Jungkook puts his hands on your shoulders, a chuckle inevitably escaping him. âIâm sorry for dragging it out. You should know Iâm high key afraid of you, thatâs why.â
âYou should be.â You grumble.
Another chuckle, but heâs back to appearing anxious. You want to shout that this isnât healthy, that youâre close to giving him a real reason to be afraid of youâyet once he blurts the confession out, youâre speechless, gawking at him and staggering backwards in complete shock. Perhaps you would have bolted as far away from him as possible if not for his solid grasp.
âWhat?â You hiss.
He swallows hard.
âI want you to marry me, ____.â
You donât bolt away running. You shake off his hold on you though, and before he gets another word in, youâre hastily rushing inside your apartment and slamming the door to his face.
****
Jungkook was your first kiss.
It happened in a game of truth and dare. You were at a party of a mutual friend and when the bottle miserably pointed in Jungkookâs direction, the person who was tasked to think of his dare when it was his pick said that he dared him to do 7 minutes in heaven with you.Â
He profusely refused at first, especially since Seowon was in the same party, but everybody began booing and next thing you know, Jungkook was agreeing as long as it was fine with you. When you nodded to make your consent apparent, your friends were quick to shove you both in the closet, some of them pulling Seowon back who was complaining how it wasnât right to bully you into doing 7 minutes in heaven with Jungkook. They calmed him down once they bullied him into agreeing too.
âWe donât have to do anything,â Jungkook told you in the darkness, his breath fawning over your face. âYou donât have to feel pressured. Itâs just a stupid game.â
You blushed.
Secretly, you were hoping that heâd kiss you or touch you. Who didnât want to do anything with their crush at the age of 15? A lot can happen in 7 minutes. You were aware that sometimes people made out, went as far as third base, and although you didnât want to go that far with Jungkook, you wanted something to happen while you were stuck in this small closet with him. There werenât a lot of instances that put both of you in this kind of situation; you wished that you were brave enough to ask him to kiss you or do the first move yourself.
5 minutes in, Jungkook turned towards you.
âIs it true that Taehyung kissed you last week?â
You whipped your head so fast that you might have given yourself whiplash. âThatâsâthatâs not true. Where did you hear that?â
âDuring homeroom. Some girls were talking about it.â
Your cheeks burned. âOh.â
âSo, itâs not true?â
âNo.â You shook your head. âI havenât even had my first kiss yet.â You laughed weakly.
It was his turn to seem stunned. âYou havenât had your first kiss yet?â
You shook your head again, then realized he might not see you doing so. âNot yet.â
âWant me to change that?â he asked, grinning.
He said that with a boyish grin and teasing tone, but you sucked at social cues (plus, you really couldnât see shit that much) that you started nodding.
âOkay,â you told him.
âHuh?â
âYou can kiss me.â
âOh, oh, shitâI didnâtââ He was blabbering, about to take back what he offered. âI mean, I was just joking butââ
You widen your eyes. âYou were? Oh my God, Iâm sorry, I thought you wereââ
âNo, it was my fault. That was a little out of line for me. Iâm sorry.â He was laughing and you felt like burying yourself 6 feet under. âIt was a stupid thing to say. But if you want me to kiss you, itâs cool.â
âIt is?â Hope sparked within you.
âYeah. Itâll just be a peck anyway.â You can tell he was smiling through his voice. âJust donât tell Seowon because he might punch me in the face for kissing his sister.â
You cackled. âDeal.â
56 seconds before the 7 minutes were up, Jungkook leaned down to match your level and placed his lips on yours.Â
****
Youâre seething with rage, the embodiment of Godzilla, channeling the God of War, Ares, in your body; you harshly press Seowonâs number on your phone to call him and he answers after three rings.
âWhatâs up?â
âI will fucking murder you,â you snarl.
A beat. You hear shuffling. Then he answers, âyou already talked with Jungkook?â
The nonchalance and calmness in his voice drives you to be more frustrated than you already are. âYes, I have! What is wrong with you? Why would you plant that idea on his head?â You yell, not caring that your walls are thin and that your voice can probably be heard by the couple that lived next door. Youâre feeling a mixture of anger, embarrassment, and every negative emotion that exists at the moment. Youâre comparable to a bull who just saw the color red.
â____, it wonât be a big deal if you donât make it to be.â
âAre you hearing yourself right now?â
âDid you even let Jungkook explain?â
âI donât need him to spell everything out. I know why heâs asking me to marry him.â
âThen you know too that itâd be good for you.â
âMarrying him wonât be good for me.â
âWhy not?â
âIt just wonât!â
âYouâll get health insurance benefits that you donât get with your current jobs. You can pay less rent once you move in at Jungkookâs placeâthereâs a huge chance he wonât even let you pay him while you stay there too. Heâs away most of the time anyway, so staying there wouldnât be a problem. Plus, you can start studying for a masters degree like youâve always wanted.â
You groan. âNot like this. This is crazy.â
âThe both of you can divorce once youâve saved up a little. It really isnât that complicated.â
âItâs a sham marriage!â
âItâs a sham marriage with Jungkook.â
âThat doesnât make it better.â
âAre you sure? Your grade school diary might disagree.â
âOh my God, thatâs fucking low of you to bring that up. You just gave me another reason to hate you.â You stomp around the living room, acting like a teenager because of your brotherâs behavior. This isnât the first time he revealed that heâs read your diary before; that doesnât mean itâs less infuriating to be reminded that he has. âI swear, you better fucking sleeping with one eye open tonight. Iâm choking you to death.â
Seowon laughs out loud. âJust marry him. Heâs surprisingly amicable with the idea.â
âThatâs because youâre pressuring him! I bet you and Mom devised this entire thing together.â
âMom doesnât know. To be fair, sheâd probably have the same reaction as you. Itâs all me and Jungkook.â
âWow. You have two brains and yet none of you thought this was goddamn stupid?â
âItâs not stupid. Itâs genius if you come to think of it,â he says. âJungkook just wants to help you, dude. He wants to make sure youâll be okay and all that shit. Youâre the reason he filed for a two-week leave, did he tell you?â
Your heart does that jumping thing again. âNo.â
âWell, he did. Heâs on a break for two weeks because he wants to convince you to marry him and actually marry you within that time frame.â
âThis is nuts.â You sigh, finally flopping down the sofa and rubbing your face with your free hand. âThe both of you are nuts. How are you okay with this?â
âItâs Jungkook. I trust him. Donât you?â
âOf course, I do, I justââ you cut yourself off and frown, âI just feel like itâs unfair for him. Iâm marrying him because of military spouse benefits and what does he get?â
Thereâs a long pause, and you almost check your phone to see whether Seowon has already hung up on you or not.
âItâs better that Jungkook answers that question,â he tells you finally.
âWhy? You canât answer it on behalf of him?â
âSomething like that.â You can imagine him shrugging. âAll I know is that heâs genuinely concerned about your health and your financial status right now. So, just think about it, okay?â
âGod, fuck it, fine. Iâll think about it.â You grimace.
You hang up and glance at the door.
You donât think the conversation you just had with Seowon took that much time. The initial rush you had upon having your longtime crush propose to you is wearing off and youâre realizing that it was a dick move to literally slam the door right in Jungkookâs face earlier, leading you to stand up from your seat and look through the peephole to check if heâs still there.
He isnât, which you sigh in relief at.
As you lean against the door and regulate your breathing, you think how funny it is that Seowon is right about one thingâand that was grade school you would have been delighted at the thought of getting married to Jungkook. Heâs your dream guy; your parents loved him, his parents loved you, the both of you got along very well, and his personality and looks are everything that youâre looking for in a partner. It sucks that you live in a world where the only reason he wants to marry you is because heâs afraid youâll die because of self-neglect.Â
Your phone pings and you unlock the screen to look at the message that flashes on it.
Jungkook: hey, seowon just messaged me to say that you two already talked Jungkook: iâm sorry for jumping on you with a topic like that⊠Jungkook: iâm shit at confrontation lol Jungkook: also itâs the first time iâm proposing so give me some slack
You scoff at his audacity to joke about it this soon.
You: itâs okay You: iâm sorry too for what i did You: the answer is no btw
Jungkook: already??? Jungkook: letâs talk about it first
You: no need You: i donât want to marry you
Jungkook: oof thatâs harsh
You: sorry not sorry?
He doesnât respond and you think youâre safe. Maybe Jungkook does take no for an answer and youâre confused because youâre a little disappointed that heâs not falling on his knees, begging you to marry him like what your imagination is supplying you.
However, after you took a shower and went to check your phone again, you see that Jungkook messaged you a few minutes ago in response to your last message.
Jungkook: give me 10 days and iâll change your mind
You have the urge to go take a shower again because of how hot your body is feeling at the statement.
You: hate to break it to you but youâre not matthew mcconaughey
Jungkook: đ€Łđ€Łđ€Ł
****
Itâs not part of Jungkookâs branding to chase a woman. Typically, women chase him; they chase him in every city and country that he gets stationed in, flirting with him and hoping that theyâll get the chance to take him home for the night for a mindblowing one-night stand. They never succeed though, for despite their pretty faces and sultry gestures, Jungkook only smiles and declines every offer, saying that he had a girl waiting back home that he loved very much.
He used to think that he only used that as an excuse because heâs not the type to hook up with every attractive girl he meets. There are times when he succumbs, when he gives into the temptation of a little fun, especially after a life threatening or highly stressful missionâbut most of the time, he thinks he declines and use that pronouncement of his because his mind reverts him to the idea of you, to what would happen if he just gained the balls to ask you out.
Evidently, although asking you out and asking you to marry him are two completely different things, heâs a bit afraid that your answer will always be a hard no. Itâs what youâve been literally spelling out to him since the day he presented the idea, regardless of how heâs trying his best in swooning you or explaining how this is the perfect plan to help you gain an upper hand with your diagnosis.
âIâll file a restraining order against you, Iâm serious,â you say to him when he appears yet again outside the faculty room, waiting for you to gather your things and head home. Youâre wearing a white button up shirt and pinstripe wide leg trousers, an outfit combination that he ogles at before he goes down to business.
âYou wouldnât.â He glares at you. He gestures for you to let him take your backpack, and despite what you said, you let him. âAlso, what the fuck is in this thing? Youâll break your back if you keep using this.â He swings your backpack on one shoulder.
You laugh. âMy laptop, its charger, a couple of notebooks, books, pens, then the outputs of my students.â
âArenât they supposed to submit virtually? What happened to Google Classroom?â
âI still use it, but sometimes I like to have their work printed out so I can write the comments better. How do you know Google Classroom?â
âI have a squadronmate whose kid uses it for class.â
âAh.â You nod in understanding.
You two continue walking forward.
This has been your program for the past few days. Jungkook goes to the university you work at, heâll wait outside, youâll threaten him with something ridiculous, heâll take your bag, heâll offer to take you to dinner, youâll decline, and then heâll drive you home anyways. Before that routine ends, heâll lean on your door frame and give you his best puppy eyes, asking you to marry him for the sake of your welfare, and youâll scowl at him, insisting that you donât need his help to survive.
âDinner?â he asks, right on schedule.
You glance at him. âNo. I want to go home and sleep for 12 hours.â
âBusy day?â
âYep.â
âYou know, if you marry me, you wonât have to work two jobs and overexert yourself.â
He doesnât need to turn to you to know that youâre giving him a dirty look. âI wonât marry you, Jungkook.â
âWhy not?â
âBecause marriage doesnât work that way.â
âIt does. Billionaires do it all the time. The mafia does it too. Itâs always been some kind of transaction.â
âWell, if I marry you, what do you get?â
âThe assurance youâre taken care of.â
âThatâs cheesy.â
You share a laugh and he grins.
âItâs true,â he says. âIâll be fine as long as you are.â
He waits for you to quip back a reply, flickering his eyes to you when it takes longer than usual. Instead of the sneer heâs expecting, you appear to be flustered, an expression that is very recognizable for him whoâs known you since foreverâan expression that makes it too obvious for Jungkook that the crush you had on him that he thought has been long gone was still there. Heâs been seeing it a lot lately, particularly when heâs uttering lines that sound flirtatious on purpose; heâs positive that youâll threaten to kill him when you discover that he basks on the fact that he can still make you all flustered and cute, which encourages him to do and say anything that would elicit a reaction from you. Was it unethical to seduce you into marrying him? He might have to rethink that part too.
Reaching the parking lot, he unlocks the doors to his vehicle and places your bag inside the backseat. He watches you walk around the car, about to go to the passengerâs side, but then you wobble a bit and his attempt to get inside is instantly forgotten.
âHey,â he strides to where you are, gazing at you as you now hold onto the hood, âyou alright?â
You raise your chin up. âKook, can you get my bag?â
Jungkook doesnât need to be told twice. Heâs swinging the door again and getting your bag from the other end of the backseat while you get on the passengerâs seat, keeping the door wide and placing your legs outside, your feet planted on the concrete.
âWhat do you need?â he asks, crouching in front of you and zipping the bag open.
âGlucometer.â
He halts. âWhat does that look like?â
âItâs in the yellow bag. There.â You point at it right when he rummages through a certain part.
He brings it out and you take it from his grasp. Your movements are sluggish but he can discern that youâre doing your best not to be too slow; heâd present to help but he knows that he might prolong what youâre doing due to his cluelessness, so he just observes, noting how youâre pricking your finger with a device and then pressing it lightly to the glucometer which shows that your blood sugar is low.
âApple juice,â you mutter to him and he finds it faster than the last one.
You grab the juice pouch from his grasp, prying the straw attached on the back, pushing its end for it to pop out of its plastic coverâthen your hand shakes, preventing you from continuing and punching in the straw properly.
âLet me do it,â he says.
You donât fight him, you just slump against the seat as Jungkook picks up from where you left, and the moment he does the job and guides the straw to your awaiting lips, a long exhale through your nose escapes you.
âHow are you feeling?â he whispers. He didnât notice that he was holding his breath the entire duration of the scene.
Another sigh. âBetter.â
âDoes this happen a lot?â
You seem to hesitate. âNot a lot. Just when life gets a bit too hectic.â
â____ââ
âJust take me home.â You donât give him the chance to lecture you. âPlease, Jungkook.â
Defeated, he nods. âAlright.â
âThank you.â
He helps you position yourself properly on the passengerâs seat. âBut weâre talking about this at your place.â
Before you can protest, he closes the door.
****
Lee Hyunwoo was the name of the guy that you brought home for Christmas Eve eight years ago. It was the first time that you did, and Jungkook hated how Hyunwoo was considerably handsome, intelligent, and kindâthe exact kind of person he always imagined you deserved.
In the short time Hyunwoo spent with theirs and your family that night, everybody loved him and was already inviting him to the next gathering, all the while Jungkook avoided him at every cost, puzzled by this strong dislike he was feeling for your guest. He was annoyed at the manner in which Hyunwoo had an arm around your waist the entire evening, how you grinned up to him, eyes sparkling and all that shit. Hell, you used to look at him like that.
âHoney, can you get the mango float we have in our freezer?â Jungkook heard your mother tell you, and without thinking, he stood up from his chair and made a beeline to where you were, telling you heâd accompany you to your house.
âThatâs fine,â you told him. âItâs literally next door.â
âYeah, but it might be heavy.â
âItâs not.â
âBetter safe than sorry.â
You rolled your eyes and agreed then, excusing yourself from Hyunwoo who was in an engaged conversation with Seowon. The pair were geeking out because of their mutual love for the MCU and the next film slated to be released the following year.
Upon arriving at your home, you dashed to the kitchen with Jungkook trudging behind you. He wasnât sure what his next course of action should be now; all he wanted was some alone time with you, away from the presence of that college boyfriend of yours, but now that he had that, he couldnât think of anything that he wanted to say or do. He wasnât even sure why he was feeling a bit jealousâwas it because of that saying? Wherein people are bound to want what they canât have? Or was it that you only appreciate what you had when youâve already lost it?
âHow long have you and Hyunwoo been dating?â he asked, leaning against the counter as you pulled your freezer open.
âFour months, I think.â
âFour months? And you already brought him home?â
You snorted at his tone. âHis family is in another country so I thought itâd be nice to invite him.â
âYou must really like him then.â
âYeah, but Iâm not in love with him or anything.â You placed the mango float on the space beside Jungkook on the counter. âHeâs nice, and he likes me too.â
âDoes he treat you well?â
You flashed your eyes at him, amusement dancing in them. âWhatâs with that question?â
âWhatâs with it?â
âNothing, itâs just thatâŠâ you trailed, a smirk etched on your face. âWait a minute, are you⊠you canât possiblyââ Jungkook was widening his eyes, ready to deny your accusation once you questioned whether he was jealous of Hyunwoo or notâ âare you pulling an overprotective brother skit on me, Kook?â
Fuck, thank God, he thought.
âI prefer âoverprotective friend skitâ,â he said.
âThat doesnât have a nice ring to it.â
âBut Iâm not your brother.â
âYou donât have to be, Iâm just saying that you and Seowon have been acting similar since Hyunwoo and I arrived.â
âNonsense. Seowon likes him.â
âOh, so you donât?â
He pressed his lips into a tight line.
âDid you just admit that you donât like Hyunwoo?â you asked, chuckling. He was grateful that you didnât seem to be offended by it.
âI didnât say I didnât like him.â
âInstead you implied it.â
âNo, I didnât.â
âYou kinda did.â
He heard you laugh and he couldnât help but allow himself to laugh as well.
âIâm sorry,â he apologized. âMaybe Iâm just not used to you dating anyone. You are chronically single.â
âCanât say youâre wrong.â You snorted and picked up from the mango float, marching back to his house and gesturing for him to follow you.
He did, no words spoken between the both of you once more. Though when you were entering their place again, with Jungkook holding the door open for you, he mentioned something he never reckoned heâd have the guts to mention out loud.
âWhen you open my gift,â he began, âdonât do it in front of Hyunwoo, okay?â
âWhy not?â You werenât paying attention to where you were going, intrigued by his warning.
âHe might not like it. Youâll see.â
That night, at the comfort of your bedroom, Hyunwoo nowhere near but instead sleeping at the coach downstairs in your living room, you opened Jungkookâs gift and saw that it was a necklace with your birth flower as its pendant.
You smiled, rolling your eyes to yourself, and slept with that giddy look never leaving your face.
****
âNot so fast,â Jungkook grunts.
Did he think that you were going to be less difficult since he was helpful earlier? Yeah, he did. He likes to think that if it wasnât for him, you would have taken longer in feeding yourself with apple juice, so he at least wanted a thank you in the form of your willingness to have an adult conversation with him tonight. However, that clearly isnât the case because when he walked you up to your apartment like he always did, youâre attempting to lock him out, shutting the door as fast as you can once youâre inside, thus trying to prevent him from initiating that talk he wanted the two of you to have.
âSeriously?â He successfully pries the door open and you scowl at him.
âJungkookââ
âNo, you donât get to reason your way out of this. Iâm done hearing you out. Itâs your turn to listen to me.â He steps inside your apartment.
You groan, striding to the sofa and throwing your bag there. âYou canât force me to marry you.â
âIs marrying me so fucking bad that you canât get over it for health insurance benefits that can really help you?â He demands, infuriated.Â
âThatâs not the issue.â
âThen what is?â
âYou can get arrested!â you exclaim. âAnd so can I! Does that not freak you out?â
âWeâll only get arrested if we get caught.â
âIâm not willing to take the risk.â
âIâm not willing to see you die.â
You scoff out a laugh. âWho the fuck said anything about dying? Iâm not dying.â
âYou almost passed out on me. You almostââ
âItâs an error on my part, I admit.â You sigh. âWhen I get busy and preoccupied, sometimes I forget to check my sugar levels regularly throughout the day. Iâm sorry.â
âAnd you expect to be convinced that you have everything handled?â
âGod, Iâm not a child. Stop treating me like I canât do shit for myself.â
âPlease, ___,â he approaches you with the most pleading expression he can muster, and he watches as your hard expression crumbles, âjust accept my help. Itâs really not a big dealâyou wonât even see me often, so keeping up with the whole marriage ploy wouldnât be difficult. Weâll divorce in two years, we can pretend we never got married after that.â
âYou just donât get it, donât you?â
âWhat do I not get? If you think I donât understand something, then explain it to meââ
âI canât marry you,â you say. You do so like itâs final, like thereâs no point in arguing with you because he can never change your stand on this. As heâs pleading with his eyes to urge you to agree, youâre communicating with your eyes in a similar way thatâs wishing he would just drop this. âItâs wrong.â
His eyebrows furrow. âThis isnât the time to go on your high horse and decide whatâs wrong and whatâs not. Itâs a fraudulent marriageâof course, itâll be wrong to some degree.â
âNo, I meanâŠâ You turn away from him, rubbing your face in exhaustion. âItâd be wrong of me to marry you. Iâm taking advantage of you if I do, and I donât like that.â
Jungkook shakes his head, frustration worsening at the childlike excuse. Surely, you werenât that naive, were you? âYouâre not. Iâm not doing this against my own will. Besides, we get extra pay just for being married. If it makes you feel better, I wonât split it with you.â
âThat wonât make me feel better.â
âThen what will?â
You flop down on the coach and lean back, closing your eyes. He knows heâs being a pain in the ass but he canât just stand here and do nothing. He thinks heâs already come too far in convincing you, he isnât going to back out now. Every single day spent together, he can feel you warming up to the idea of marrying him for health insurance. Your connection and entirety of your relationship has been off the charts recently that itâll be harder for him not to be assured that before he leaves for his job, youâll be taken care off.
Jungkook goes to the spot beside you, sitting down. Your knees bump together, he keeps on gazing at you, waiting for you to focus on him; a minute passes and his gaze moves to your hand thatâs laying on the small space between you.
Without overthinking, he stretches out and clasps it, allowing his fingers to play with yours that finally captures your attention. The moment he glances up, he sees that youâre staring at him and he doesnât let go, he even smiles, a quiet promise that heâs always willing to listen to whatever you want to tell him.
You hesitantly smile back. âYou know,â your eyes train back to your intertwined fingers, Jungkook reveling in the warmth of your skin, gaining more confidence in acting out his feelings, âthere was a time wherein I would have said yes immediately if you asked me to marry you.â
He smirks, canât deny how hearing that inflates his ego a bit although this route in the conversation isnât where he expected to go. âWhat changed?â
âFor one, I grew up.â
âOuch.â
You laugh. Then you stay quiet for a while before speaking. âCan I confess something?â
That piques his interest. âAnything.â
âBut you have to promise not to make fun of me.â
âThatâs impossible.â He teases. âWhat is it?â
You stall, readjusting your position so that you can directly face him. Jungkook doesnât let go of your hand, he keeps it in his grasp, his thumb rubbing along the expanse of your knuckles.
âI like you, Jungkook. I really really do,â you finally say and he blinks, startled.
It shouldnât surprise him, considering that itâs been long established that he knew of your crush already, though he doesnât seem to have anticipated for you to boldly admit it when all these years, itâs only been some kind of unspoken understanding that neither of you downright acknowledged.
You continue speaking. âIn fact, I like you so much that maybe it developed into love at some pointâIâm not sure. Iâm at this stage of no longer being afraid of what I feel, I think? Most of the time, I just let it occur like itâs something so natural. Like itâs a feeling that I can never get away from? Like whatever I do, thereâs no way to shake you.â You chuckle half-heartedly. âThough never in a million years would I have thought that Iâd confess all of this. What for anyway? I donât want you to be burdened with what my teenage heart couldnât rub out.â
His mind is racing; hundred thoughts, hundred scenarios, hundred experiences heâs spent with you since the day you met. Jungkook never realized how much he needed you to say that you liked himâthat maybe you even loved himâuntil he heard it from your very mouth that you did, causing every inhibition and doubt he had to vanish. Now, he only wants to engulf you in an embrace and shout Yes, I feel the same way! Sorry for being a fucking corward and not doing this first!
He would have done all of that in a flash if it didnât appear that you still had something to say. Based on your rather constipated posture and the hand heâs holding thatâs becoming clammy, he discerns that youâre just in the first part of what you wanted to admit.
âActually, thatâs also why I canât let myself marry you,â you say. âI know it sounds ridiculous, but I donât know⊠it feels really icky somehow. I feel like Iâm holding you hostage, or that Iâm tricking you because of an ulterior motive, or that Iâm defying the laws of the universe by having the chance to marry you. Iâm not sure. I just know that I donât want to marry you if it means Iâll only get to do so because you think youâre doing me a huge favor. I donât want to be your charity case, KookâI deserve to be more than that, you know? Iâm not traditional or whatever but if itâs not for love, Iâm not keen on getting married.â You abruptly pull away from his clutch, embarrassment washing on your features by what you stated. âPlus, two years might not be that long but what happens when you meet someone and you like her? How can you explain that youâre only married to me because I need it for my medication? Itâll just be unnecessarily messy. I donât want to hold you back from those kinds of things. I donât want to be a hindrance.â
Thatâs his cue. Thatâs when he knows heâs supposed to kiss you and take your breath away, to admit that heâs certain that he has loved you since that one time when he was in the Naval Academy and although the training was hard as fuck, the thought of you gave him strength and he didnât want to see anyone as much as he wanted to see you afterâthat when you and Seowon visited him, that familiar urge to have you alone was all he felt the entire time, solidifying the idea that perhaps he didnât just see you as a friend.
âYouâre unbelievably dense, ___,â he murmurs, smirking at the play of events, and you glance at him, expression showing disbelief that heâs somehow treating this matter lightly.
âWhat?â
âDo you honestly think I go around and offer marriage to every woman out there who can benefit from being a military spouse? Do you think Iâm that generous? Iâm not. I wouldnât ask anyone to marry me for the same reason if they werenât important to meâor if I didnât like them. Iâm not that much of a saint,â he adds. âI mean, Iâm taking a two-week break to convince you to marry me. Iâm spending time with you every single day. Iâm driving for almost an hour and a half, enduring the traffic to get from my apartment to the university you work in to do thatâand you think this is because I want to be charitable?â
Silence. Your forehead wrinkles. He thinks youâre still not getting the point.
âIâm in love with you, ____,â Jungkook says.
Your breath hitches in your throat. Youâre opening your mouth, then closing it, then opening it again, then pressing it into a thin line. He thinks you look cute, being taken aback like this, and heâs wishing that heâs done this sooner so that the last five days of him chasing you around like a lost puppy was spent with talking more about whatâs possibly waiting for yours and his relationship next.
âAre you serious?â you ask after what seems like forever. âOr are you just saying that because youâre that desperate to have me on board with the whole fraudulent marriage thing?â
âGodââ Heâs inching closer to you now, laughing, watching your lips twitch at his reactionâ âIâm convinced that you were born into this earth to drive me fucking crazy.â
And just like that, he no longer restrains himself from kissing you.
It takes you a few good seconds before you will yourself to move. You canât seem to process the reality of Jungkook admitting that he was in love with you and then taking the liberty to plant his lips on yours. Youâre not complaining, of course, but you are a bit overwhelmed that it literally makes you freeze, unaware of what youâre supposed to do now that your fantasies are coming into life.
However, once you feel him angle his head to the side, doing so to deepen the kiss, your reflexes kick in and youâre kissing him back, encircling your arms around his neck and leaning towards him, Jungkook sighing in what appears to be relief. He grips your hips to support you as you try to straddle him, but your movements are so clumsy that you end up sprawling against his chest instead, perched on a leg of his that provides pleasure on the spot you need him the most. He chuckles at your lack of gracefulness, gliding his lips to your cheek and down to your jaw, nipping.
âThis okay?â he whispers with a palm drifting to your bottom.
You nod and Jungkookâs mouth is back on yours in an instant. He squeezes your ass, takes his time in fondling with it, cheekily slapping whenever you get brave yourself and push your tongue past his lips, before he skims his hand lower to your thigh and signals for you to mount him. Upon being properly sat on his lap, you get an immediate feel of his hard length through his jeans, prompting your imagination to run wild and induce the filthiest things he can do to you if neither of you stops.
âHoly shit,â he curses, your kisses roaming to the base of his throat where you lap and suck.
It becomes a dirty pattern for a while. The both of you will take a brief pause from making out to remove a piece of clothing or kiss every other exposed skin there is: the cheek, the jaw, the neck, the collarbones, the shoulders. Then one of you hauls the other back for another passionate kiss, hands skating everywhere on your bodies, sounds of arousal echoing inside the room; youâre starting to get lightheaded but youâre positive itâs not because of your sugar levels running low.
âI hate that it took us so long to get to this point,â he mutters.
You grin. âIâm sorry.â
âDonât apologize. Iâm the manâI should have confessed long ago.â
âWhy didnât you?â
âI donât know. âWas afraid to lose you, I guess.â He draws his head back and admires your blissed out expression. âBut then when Seowon told me you had diabetes, I panicked and thought that I might lose you either way.â
You go back to making out, Jungkook guiding your hips in grinding on his clothed length. Itâs addictiveâthe intimate feel of him, how heâs not shy in making sure you know how much heâs craving to be as close to you as you are to him. You think you can spend the whole night just doing this and be okay with it.
âFuck, Kook,â you groan against his mouth, a hand descending to his stomach and to his manhood, âyouâre so⊠so fuckinâ hard.â
Youâre palming him now, tracing the erection evident under his boxers.
He lets out a grunt. âYeah, baby, I know.â
âDo you⊠do you want meââ Youâre breathless, not able to continue whatever it is that you want to say.
He understands you just fine though. âNo.â He shakes his head. âDonât do anything.â
Youâre not sure what Jungkook means by that. How are you supposed to do nothing when you want to do everything to him? You soon comprehend what he means when he guides you to lay down on the sofa, when his lips skim lower and lower, passing your breasts, giving them the attention they deserve, until he goes lower than that and discards your underwear, kissing you in between your legs.
Itâs like heâs releasing all the pent up emotions heâs been keeping all these years. His tongue and fingers are relentless, his voice is telling you that heâs eager to coax an orgasm out of you, and as he lifts himself up to return to his previous position, face hovering yours, youâre positive that heâll get everything he wants because without a doubt youâll give him everything he wants from you too. Hell, if he uses this opportunity to ask you to marry him again, you might answer yes straight away, no longer bearing in mind the worries you expressed to him earlier.
Although did that even matter anymore? Jungkook said he loved you. He said you drove him crazy. You never thought youâd come to see the day heâd utter those words but here you are. The man of your dreams is kissing you, pleasing you, and looking damn enthusiastic as he does all of that.
âLast chance to stop me,â Jungkook teases. His eyes are glassy and you can feel his cock nudging on your thigh.
You giggle, bringing his head closer to press another long kiss on those pink and plump lips of his. âPlease never stop.â
âNever?â
âNever.â
âIâm going to take you up on that.â
âPlease do.â
After this night, youâre certain that youâll never allow yourself to be with another man aside from Jungkook. At the back of your head, you always thought that you were his, regardless if that wasnât true or that there was no real relationship to prove thatâhowever, at this moment, as he thrusts in and out languidly, you unquestionably know that you are. You belong to him now and he belongs to you; he lets you know through his love-filled gaze, his passionate kisses, and the manner wherein he moans your name.
âI love you,â he says, like heâs still in deep longing for your touch and affection.
You hum, tangling your fingers through the strands of his hair. âI love you, Kook.â You stare at his eyes. âI canât remember a time I didnât.â
A boyish grin erupts on his features.
Time passes by quickly. In a few more of his kisses, of the intoxicating slam of his hips, of his seductive whimpers, youâre coming beneath him, Jungkook pulling out and jerking his length until he too comes, his seed landing on the base of your tummy. You have the nerve to giggle at that, grinning at him with low-lidded eyes, and Jungkook hastily wipes his cum off your skin, attacking you with another passionate kiss that leaves you breathless.
âThereâs no way youâre not marrying me after this,â he murmurs.
You teasingly graze your teeth on his bottom lip. âIâll think about it.â
He groans. ïżœïżœDonât think about it. Just say yes.â
âAt least let me sleep on it, Kook.â
âFuckâfine.â He grabs your sides and pulls you flush against his body. âGuess Iâll have to keep on convincing you until you agree.â
****
âGod, why is this so difficult?â Jungkook whines, keeping you in his embrace, head tucked between your cheek and shoulder.
The air is very humid and Jungkookâs in his naval aviator uniform, which doesnât look cool in a sense that air is properly flowing through the material. He doesnât care though, doesnât care that itâs sticking to his skin as he refuses to let you go, not even when you complain playfully.
âKook, Iâm fucking sweaty.â
âI donât care.â
You laugh.Â
Heâs leaving to return to his duty and youâre here with him outside the base before he enters, being with him until the last possible minute because thatâs how much of a good wife you are.
Yes, you and Jungkook did get married. Three days ago in fact, at the city hallâs courtroom. Neither of you invited your parents; they didnât know about the occasion and you refused to tell them, afraid that they may be critical about yours and his choices when they discover the true reason why youâre rushing to be wed. The only people that remained to be aware of it was Seowon and his girlfriend, Winnie, who served as the witnesses, which was fine by you. In your understanding, this was just for the papers and your health, and not the real deal yet to be celebrated lavishly.
âIâll propose to you again after a couple of years,â Jungkook promised after the ceremony. âLetâs renew our vows and Iâll give you an amazing wedding.â
You would have told him that there was no need, but who were you kidding? You did want a proper wedding with Jungkook. The previous week didnât even feel like you were newlyweds. Yes, the both of you compacted all of the dates you could have if one of you werenât such a chicken in five days, and yes, though the honeymoon stage was experienced and practicedâit was only because you were a new couple who after years of hiding their feelings for one another, was now finally free to express it as much as they desired.
âCall me everyday?â you ask when he finally pulls back, Jungkook pecking your lips one more time.
âDefinitely.â He smiles. âVisit me whenever possible?â
âOf course.â You kiss him too.
His smile transforms into a grin. âTake care of yourself, alright? Keep me updated all the time. No sugarcoating allowed.â
âYes, Lieutenant.â
Rolling his eyes, he gives you another kiss and engulfs you in a tight hug, lifting you off the ground that causes you to giggle.
âOkay, pack it up, love birds!â Seowon shouts.
The two of you turn to your brother whoâs leaning on his car, the vehicle that was used to transport the three of you today. Youâre still in the middle of moving your belongings at Jungkookâs place and Seowon was kind enough to volunteer helping, always dubious that you could do stuff on your own. Despite your reluctance, you let him assist you, mostly because youâre trying to make a conscious effort in not upsetting him again.
Letâs just say that when the judge hailed you husband and wife at the civil wedding, Seowon wasnât thrilled to see that the kiss shared between you and Jungkook wasnât as fake as the supposed sham marriage, leading him to the conclusion that in the middle of Jungkookâs ruse of convincing you to be his wife, something must have happened that led to your approval and that rather 18+ rated kiss. Mostly though, heâs just offended that neither of you thought of telling him that you were an official couple before the wedding.
Jungkook unwillingly places you down.
âI think I need to go,â you say.
He nods with a sigh. âIâll miss you.â
âIâll miss you too.â
âCall you tomorrow?â
âYes.â You affectionately caress his cheek, bringing his face down for the very very very last kiss.Â
He leans into it. âFuck, I donât want to leave.â
âSeriouslyâhurry up!â Seowon shouts and you pull back.
âI will kill him,â you tell Jungkook.
âHeâs your brother,â he says. âAnd now, my brother-in-law, so I canât let you do that.â
âThat might be your very first red flag, Jungkook, insinuating that youâre choosing my brother over me.â You cross your arms. âTell me, if the both of us were drowning, would you save me or Seowon?â
âYou,â he answers without missing a beat.
You narrow your eyes. âIs that the truth?â
âOf course. Seowon would probably undrown himself anyway and youâre shit at swimming. Itâs an easy choice.â
You punch him hard on the shoulder and he feigns hurt, snickering. âFor the record, I donât think anyone can âundrownâ themselvesâbut fine, you pass the test.â
Jungkook faces Seowonâs direction and does a final salute, your brother returning it swiftly, and just like that, you and him share your last farewells. You watch as he goes through the entrance of the base and sends you a wave of goodbye; you weakly copy the gesture and stand there for a few seconds, just watching him fade from your view the further he trudges inside. You donât think saying goodbye to him ever felt this heavy, and you blame it on the fact that after all this is the first time youâre saying goodbye to him with the assurance that he loves you tooâand that alone weighs millions.
You spin on your heel and go to Seowon whoâs already in the driverâs seat. As soon as you get in and wear your seat belt, heâs giving you a dirty look.
âWhat?â you ask.
âPlease never do that in front of me again.â
His statement makes you smirk. âWhy? Didnât you want this?â
âWant what?â
âMe and Jungkook to be together.â
âWhen on earth did I say that?â
âYou previously admitted that you were lowkey playing cupid by suggesting that Jungkook marry me for health insurance.â
A short pause. âYeah, but that doesnât mean I have to watch you two reenact a porno every fucking time.â
âWeâre notââ
âYou are. Donât deny it.â He grumbles. âGod, every time I see you two, itâs like Iâm Ross from that one Friends episode where he accidentally sees Monica and Chandler doing it from the window of his apartment.â
âYeah, I remember that.â You laugh. âIn my defense, you havenât seen me and Jungkook actually do the deed soââ
âWait, so the two of you have?â
Your expression drops. His tone is approaching older brother protectiveness territory and youâre quick to attempt diffusing the situation. âI will not dive into that. All Iâm going to say is that Iâm a grown adult and so is Jungkook.â
He grimaces before starting the engine. âYeah, never dive into that. I donât need to hear the details.â
You share a laugh and then silence fills the car.
You press your lips together, looking at him while he backs out from the parking spot. âHey, thanks, by the way. For driving today, and for offering to help me later, and maybe for also never minding your own business.â
You recall how Seowon was the one who couldnât stop worrying about you and finding a solution when you told your family that you had type 1 diabetes. Your parents were concerned, they pestered you for months to force you to accept financial assistance from them, but they gave up soon after. Seowon though? He never did. He persisted through every outburst you had; he tolerated your bitchiness and your dirty looks all the time. Out of everyone in your life, you always felt like regardless of how stubborn and prideful you could be, Seowon was worseâin the best way possible.
A crooked smile illuminates his face. âYouâre my kid sister. Itâs my job to never let you experience peace in your whole life.â
You scoff. âWell, youâre damn great at what you do.â
When you reach Jungkookâs apartment, unloading the boxes and arranging your stuff to its designated places, your heart swells in happiness as the reality sinks in that your life is heading in the right direction after months of feeling hopeless. It drives you to be more thankful to the little things, to the people who were always by your side, to your previous circumstance that although wasnât ideal was still manageable. A lot donât get to have that kind of privilege and you promise yourself that youâll make an effort to find more things to be grateful about from this day forward.
âOh, I forgot to mention,â Seowon approaches in the middle of you arranging your books on Jungkookâs near to empty shelf, âWinnie wanted to give you this. She would have handed it over herself but sheâs going to be busy for the next few days.â
You take the frame from his hand and see that itâs the picture Winnie took of you and Jungkook after the ceremony. Itâs in the restaurant that you ate at to celebrate the civil wedding. Jungkook was grinning at you with an arm around on the backrest of your chair, you were leaning towards him, smiling at the cameraâand the absolute selling point of why this was the best picture ever taken was because of how cake icing was scattered on your faces, places on spots in an artistic manner like it was planted there on purpose for the picture and not because the both of you were being silly that instance.
You think it showcases your relationship with Jungkook marvelously. Itâs playful, itâs sweet, and most of all, it demonstrates how you two are clearly great friends.
âThis is so beautiful, Seowon,â you say.
You immediately send Winnie a heartfelt thank you message for the gift and continue to take a photo of the frame, sending it to Jungkook as well.
Once you hit send, you type out a message to accompany it.
You: look how cute we look đ„č
Youâre certain itâll take hours before he replies so you keep your phone again, going back to staring at the picture which is now placed on one of the shelves. Itâs the sole picture frame you have with Jungkook. In fact, itâs the only picture that Jungkook has in his apartment, and you like to think that this might be the mark of the new beginning youâll have with him. Even though your relationship wouldnât be traditionally explored given his occupation and how heâs most likely going to be away a lot, you donât mind.
If thereâs one thing you really believe in, itâs that waiting for Jungkookâwhether consciously or unconsciouslyâalways brings out the best outcomes.
gentle reminder: this author loves feedback! let her know your thoughts if you enjoyed reading this fic and youâll add 100+ points in her writing motivation meter âĄ
#jungkook#jungkook x reader#jungkook imagines#jeon jungkook#jeon jungkook x reader#jeon jungkook imagines#bts#bts imagines#bts x reader#bts drabbles#jungkook drabbles#bts scenarios#jungkook scenarios#jungkook x you#jeon jungkook x you#bts x you#jungkook fanfiction#bts fanfiction#jeon jungkook fanfiction
6K notes
·
View notes
Text
well, all right iâm bad, but then youâre no prize eitherâŠ
pair: joel miller x fem!reader
wc: 8.6k
contains: 18+ SMUT MDNI, no ellie, general violence (only referenced), age gap (56/26), swearing, so many spacers lmao, not quite friends to lovers and not quite enemies to lovers but a weird other thing, kinda mean!joel for a good sec, dressing wounds, joel miller TUMMY, loss of virginity (reader is a virgin but she's not completely oblivious and weirdly infantile about it lmao), fingering (fem!receiving), p in v, unprotected sex whoops, size kink, belly bulging, pussy pronouns, porn with a tiny plot, no use of y/n.
natâs note: well, i finally caved yâall. babyâs first tlou fic! this literally took me forever to write and even longer to post cause i was so terrified LMAO so please give me some grace if itâs shit and heâs ooc and timelines are a little fuzzy cause i barely know what iâm doing. thank you chickens love you mwah mwah mwah. kisses!
dividers by lovely @saradika-graphics!
joel found a lodge houseâŠ
You donât know what you did to make Joel Miller hate you so much.
He's never outright said it, but you know itâs thereâin every sharp glance, every clipped word, every deliberate avoidance.
Besides, his silence is worse than anything he could say. A quiet condemnation that settles in your chest like stone.
You tell yourself it doesnât matter, that you donât care what he thinks, but the truth is harder to swallow.
You do careâmore than you want to admit. His approval, his respect, hell, even a sliver of kindness from him feels like an impossible prize youâll never win.
And you hate yourself for wanting it. For needing it.
It's not just the weight of his disdain that eats at you, it's the not knowing why. God, do you wish you could ask him why.
What did you do to make him look at you like youâre some necessary evil he has to tolerate. Why does he hold some unspoken grudge that's manifested itself into something you couldn't dream of ever comprehending.
But the thought of confronting Joel feels like standing on the edge of a cliff, staring down into a void that might swallow you whole.
So instead, you do what you've always done. You keep your distance, try to match his indifference with your own, and tell yourself itâs better this way.
You were young when the outbreak hit, six years old.
Youâre sure thatâs part of it. That thatâs how Joel sees you, as some bumbling, naive child whoâs more of a hassle than anything else.
Another mouth to feed, another back to watch, baggage.
You've been with him for almost seven months now, traveling side by side when you may have well been miles apart. Trekking through abandoned cities, overgrown highways, and every godforsaken patch of wilderness in between.
In the beginning, you did everything you could to prove him wrong.
You pushed yourself past your limits, hunted, scavenged, fought, kept up. You did everything that needed to be done without hesitation.
All to show that you were more than what he made you out to be. It never seemed to matter much.
After you lost your parents in the early days of the outbreak, it was just you and your sister. She taught you everything you know, taught you how to survive.
It's because of her that you know how to shoot a rifle, how to skin a rabbit, how to start a fire with nothing but sticks and dried moss, how to snap bones and locate which vital arteries bleed out the quickest.
It's because of her that you've been able to hone some sick skill in the maiming of clickers.
A skill you never thought you'd need to use on her.
You were supposed to be safe in the QZ. You weren't supposed to be fifteen years old, aiming a gun at the one person you had left.
Your own flesh and blood wasn't supposed to be the very first in a long list of red tallies under your belt.
Itâs been years and youâve still never forgotten that day. December 19th, 2012, the date burned into your brain like someone took a branding iron to the tissue.
You canât count the amount of times youâve been ripped from your sleep drenched in a cold sweat with the tail end of a scream tearing at the skin of your throat.
The image of what was left of your sister, slumped on the ground lifeless as her blood painted the wall behind her flashing behind your closed eyelids. The sound of her last labored breath ringing in your ears louder than any shotgun blast.
You ran that same night, with the weight of her death on your shoulders.
Your entire world spinning out around you as you clawed through barbed wire fencing, not caring where you were going or what would happen to youâjust needing to escape.
There was nothing left for you to do after that but survive. And thatâs what you did, for years, scraping by in a world that had already chewed you up and spit you out a mangled mess.
You learned how to be ruthless because of it.
How to harden yourself against the loss, the pain, the brutality. But there were cracks, too. Cracks you hid well, buried deep beneath layers of stubbornness and distance.
The endless days blurred into each other. Empty houses, hollow streets. A life reduced to scavenging, hiding, and the occasional, fleeting moment of human connection that inevitably ended in loss.Â
And then you found yourself with Joel.
You hadnât exactly found him, though. More like crashed into his orbit by accident.
A few desperate days spent scavenging through the ruins of a small town, a chance encounter that left you both wary and unwilling to turn your backs.
But, inexplicably, you somehow became part of his traveling routine.
He wasnât like any of the others youâd met before. At first, you thought he might be different. A man who seemed broken, but different nonetheless.
As the days turned into weeks, and weeks into months, you began to see the truth. Joel Miller wasnât concerned with you. He didnât need you. And, more than that, he didnât want you around.Â
You didnât know what to do with that.
Itâs a bitter kind of irony. Youâve survived all this time completely on your own, fought tooth and nail to stay alive, but with him, you might just crumble.
Joel found a lodge house. It's a small, weathered place tucked away in the dense trees of the wood surrounding it.
He only deemed it suitable after an extensive perimeter check and a thorough sweep of the interior.
It's not muchâjust another run-down place in the middle of nowhereâbut for the first time in what feels like forever, itâs a roof over your head for the night.
The walls are sturdy, though the windows are cracked and half of the floorboards creak like they're about to give out at any moment.
You explored the second floor alone, creeping through the desolate rooms and taking in all that was left behind.
Old family photographs covered in thick layers of dust, worn clothes riddled with holes still hung in the few closets you stumble across.
The oddest of all was an old jewelry box tucked away in a dresser draw, tarnished silver dull and muddy.
The sound of familiar footsteps comes from somewhere behind you. The door creaks open slowly.
Joel. Of course.
He clears his throat, the sound abrasive in the quiet of the house. Â
âFireâs low,â he says, voice rough from its lack of use today.
You donât turn around, not yet. You take the box in your gloved hand, running your fingers across the intricate design of the lid, touch trailing over winding vines and small roses.
âOkay,â you mutter, your voice coming out quieter than you intended. âIâll grab some more wood later.â
Another beat of silence. Then, âItâs gettinâ cold out, Iâll go.â
Your fingers pause their ministrations, moving to flip the lid open. Empty.
âSuit yourself,â you reply after a moment, your tone just as neutral as his.
Joel doesnât leave right away. You hear the floorboards groan beneath his weight, his presence lingering in the doorway.Â
You wonder what heâs waiting for, or if heâs waiting at all.
Finally, he speaks. âDonât touch anything.â
With that he turns and leaves the room, you wait until you canât hear his footsteps trailing down the stairs anymore to let out the scoff festering in your chest.
You snap the jewelry lid shut with a little more force than necessary. âAsshole.â
Joel's been gone for a while now. Longer than it takes to chop a few logs for firewood.
You came down from the upstairs a few minutes after hearing the tell-tale sound of the heavy door opening and closing. The main room is quiet, save for the soft crackle of the dwindling fire.
You're perched on an old armchair near the entrance, peering out the dirty window that has the best view of the treeline as you nervously pick the skin around your nails.
You tell yourself not to worry. Heâs probably fine, heâs been doing this a lot longer than you. And if Joel is anything, itâs annoyingly competent.
Still, a nagging doubt itches at the back of your mind. It's been at least half an hour, maybe more.
Youâre just about to grab your own pack and go looking for him when the front door creaks open.
Joel stumbles inside, the frigid evening air rushing in behind him before he slams the door shut. At first glance, he looks fineâno more haggard than usual.Â
But then you notice the way he favors his left side, the way his free hand is pressed against his ribs, blood seeping through his fingers and staining his torn undershirt.
Youâre on your feet in an instant.
âFuck,â you say, voice sharper than you expected. âWhat the hell happened?â
âRaiders.â Is the only explanation you get as he tries to brush past you like itâs nothing. The stiff way he moves and the tightens of his jaw betray him. âSâjust a scratch.â
âBullshit,â you snap, stepping in front of him and blocking his path to the fire. âSit. Now.â
He gives you a look, one of those deep, withering glares youâve seen him use to intimidate countless others into submission. But you stand your ground, chin raised and jaw setâdefiant.Â
His stubbornness finally meeting its match in your own.Â
Finally, with a low growl of frustration, he drops onto the couch. âHappy now?â
"Not until you let me take care of that." You motion toward his side, where the blood is still spreading.
âIâm fine,â he mutters, lolling his head back to rest more heavily on the couch.
âSure you are,â you snap, crossing the room to rifle through your bag. âAnd Iâm the fucking Queen of England.â
"Said Iâm fine," he bites through gritted teeth, but youâre already moving, heading back to him with the first aid kit from your pack.
"You want to bleed out on this ugly-ass couch? Be my guest," you shoot back, dropping to your knees in front of him. "Otherwise, shut up and let me help."
Joel surprisingly doesnât argue any further, just sighs heavily and reluctantly sinks further into the couch cushions.
You push the front of his jacket open to slide it off his shoulders as gently as you can, peeling back the layer of his flannel next.
The smell of blood hits you immediately.
The gash is about five inches long, trailing the span of his ribcage. Itâs deepâbut not fatalâjust an angry red and oozing blood.
Definitely not the simple 'scratch' he made it out to be.
Your stomach churns at the sight, but you push it down. No time for that.
âJesus, Joel,â you mutter under your breath, reaching for the alcohol in your kit. âYou really know how to underplay a situation, huh?â
He doesnât respond, just watches you with those dark, calculating eyes of his. Always watching, always assessing.
Itâs unnerving, but you focus on the task at hand, grabbing a clean cloth and soaking it with alcohol.
âThis is gonna hurt,â you warn, though thereâs a part of you that doesnât mind the idea of causing him a little discomfort.
A petty, vindictive part that still stings from all the scorn heâs thrown your way.
âJust get it over with,â Joel grits out, his voice low and gravelly.
You donât give him any more warnings as you wipe the soaked cloth over the wound. He flinches, a harsh curse slipping through clenched teeth, but he doesnât pull away.
You work as quickly as you can, wiping away the blood and dirt with steady hands, your movements as gentle as possible given the situation.
You let out an annoyed huff when the torn fabric of his shirt gets in the way of your hands for a second time.
You lean back on your heels, glancing up at Joel. âYou need to take your shirt off.â
Joel raises a brow at you, his lips pressing into a thin line. âThat really necessary?â
âYes, itâs necessary, Joel,â you huff, already losing patience. âUnless you want me to sit here and cut around every thread of this ratty thing while you bleed out, then by all meansââ
He sighs heavily, cutting you off as he shifts forward and grabs the hem of his shirt. He tugs at the fabric, grunting in pain each time it strains his ribs.
You roll your eyes at how slow heâs moving, and your patienceâalready worn thin by the day's eventsâsnaps.
âJesus Christ, let me help,â you huff, reaching forward and grabbing the fabric.
Joel jerks back slightly, his hand shooting up to stop yours mid-motion. âI got it,â he growls, a sharp edge in his voice.
You glare at him, your hand still caught in his grip. His palm is calloused, his hold firm enough to make your pulse jump unexpectedly.Â
For a moment, the two of you just sit there, locked in a silent standoff.
Then he releases your hand and pulls the shirt over his head himself, wincing as the movement pulls at his side.
You wait with your arms crossed, trying to ignore the awkward flutter of nerves in your stomach as the fabric peels away to reveal his chest.
Joelâs broad, solid frame isnât new to you. Youâve seen him shirtless beforeâbrief glimpses when bathing in rivers or changing in run down houses between stops.
But this time feels different, more intimate somehow.
Youâre staring, and you know it.
The firelight cast shadows over his skin, illuminating old scars, faint lines of muscle, the barely there jut of his stomach over the hem of his jeans.
You had been getting more game kills recently, two hunters are always better than one.
Joel clears his throat, dragging your focus back to the present. âYou gonna gawk all night, or can we move this along?â
You snap out of it, scowling to cover your embarrassment. âYeah, yeah. Donât get your panties in a twist.â
You finish cleaning the gash and grab the small needle and thread lying next to you.
âThisâll hurt worse than the alcohol,â you say, threading the needle easily.
Joel snorts, a rare sound. âFigures.â
The needle pierces his skin, and this time, you catch the smallest hitch in his breath. He doesnât make a sound, but his jaw tightens, the veins in his neck standing out like cords.
His hands grip the edge of the couch hard enough that his knuckles turn white with it, but he doesnât tell you to stop or slow down.
Heâs too damn proud for that.
You shift closer, your knee brushing against his leg as you position yourself to work from a better angle. You feel his eyes on you, that intense, scrutinizing stare that makes your skin prickle.
âYouâve done this before,â Joel says after a moment, his tone less sharp than before. Itâs not quite a question, more of an observation.
You shrug, keeping your hands steady. âOf course I have.â
âWho taught you?â
The question catches you off guard, Joelâs never shown much interest in what your life was before you met him. You glance up briefly, catching his gaze. Thereâs no malice there, no judgmentâjust curiosity.
You swallow hard, dragging your eyes back to stitches, half way done now. âMy sister.â
You donât elaborate and Joel doesnât push.
Maybe itâs the sudden tightness in your tone or the look you know must be clouding your face that keeps him quiet.
You finish off the stitching, tearing the thin strand of thread with your hands before youâre leaning away again.
âGood as new,â you say, dabbing some more alcohol on your own hands to disinfect. âTry not to tear these open anytime soon.â
Joel leans back, strong arms spread across the back of the couch, his face unreadable as he peers down at the fresh stitching on his side.Â
âCouldâve done it myself,â he mutters, but the edge in his voice is gone, replaced with something softer, almost resigned.Â
You roll your eyes with a scoff, not even trying to hide your irritation as you rise from the floor. âSure you couldâve, right before you passed out. Youâre welcome by the way.â
You gather your supplies and turn to head back to your bag, but Joelâs voice stops you in your tracks.
âYouâre always like this, yâknow,â he says, and the words carry that same gravelly drawl, but thereâs something new thereâsomething heavier.
You pause, your hands tightening around the kit in your grasp. âLike what?â
âPushy. Stubborn,â he replies, his tone cutting, though it lacks the usual venom. âLike youâve got somethinâ to prove all the damn time.â
You whip around, your patience officially gone. âYou think Iâm stubborn?â you shoot back, your voice rising. âComing from the guy who would rather bleed out on a fucking couch than admit he needs help?â
Joelâs jaw tightens, and his hands flex against the couch cushions, but you donât stop. Not now. Not after months of this.
âIâve been busting my ass since day one to prove that Iâm not dead weight to you. Iâve fought for us, for you. And for what? Just to get more of your bullshit attitude?â
âYou donât know what the hell youâre talkinâ about,â Joel snaps, pushing himself upright despite the obvious strain it puts on his freshly stitched wound. âYou donât know a goddamn thing about me.â
âBecause you wonât let me!â you fire back, stepping closer, your voice rising. âAll you do is look at me like Iâm some burden you canât wait to get rid of.â
Joelâs glare sharpens, his lips parting as if to respond, but you cut him off.
You really canât stop yourself now that you started, all the anger and frustration reaching a fever pitch hot enough to burst the tight lid youâve kept on your emotions.
âIf Iâm such a hassle, why didnât you just leave me back there, huh? Why didnât you just walk away like I know you wanted to?â
Joelâs breathing is heavier now, his broad chest rising and falling as his dark eyes bore into yours.
For a moment, he doesnât say anything. Then, he stands, and the sheer size of him forces you to tilt your chin up slightly to keep your glare fixed on his face.
âYou think I wanted this, kid?â he growls, his voice low and strained, like heâs barely holding himself together. âYou think I wanted to be responsible for someone else? To have someone elseâs fuckinâ life on me?â
âDonât call me kid,â you spit, shoving a finger into his chest, ignoring the way his jaw ticks at the contact. âIâm not a fucking kid.â
He scoffs, casting his eyes to the ceiling disbelievingly. âCouldâve fooled me.â
âFuck you, Joel,â you growl, fists clenching at your side. âIf you hate me that much, why the hell are you still here? Why didnât you tell me to fuck off the second you met me?â
âBecause I couldnât!â Joel snaps, booming voice filling the small space.
The confession slips out like it pains him. His fists clench at his sides, and for a moment, he looks like he might break something.
Youâve never been scared of Joel, even though youâve seen first hand just how scary he can be.
Now, as he looms in front of you, eyes blazing and jaw working furiously beneath his skin, itâs the closest to scared youâve felt.
âIâve seen you out there,â he continues, tone low and dark. âYouâve got a fuckinâ death wish. Youâre too damn stubborn to just stop, and Iâm not gonna let you go so you can run off and get yourself fuckinâ killed.â
Your heart pounds in your chest, his words hitting far too close to home.
âIâm just trying to survive, Joel,â you snap, your voice shaking. âThatâs what we do, isnât it? Survive.â
âSurvive,â Joel repeats bitterly, his gaze burning into yours. âThat what you call it? Throwinâ yourself into every goddamn fight, gettinâ stabbed and shot right fuckinâ in front of me and expecting me to brush that shit off?â
You let out a humorless laugh, nodding your head exasperatedly. âYes, yes I do expect you to just brush it off, because thatâs what you always do.âÂ
âWell I canât,â he grates out, taking a step closer. âI canât âcause despite whatever it is that you may think about me, I donât hate you. I care about you too damn much and that's my goddamn problem.â
That shuts you up, your mouth snapping closed with a sharp click of your teeth as you stare at him, shocked.
Joel holds your gaze, lips pressed into a thin line. âThat what you wanted to hear?â
Itâs in that moment that the fire finally fizzles out, the dull hiss of it the only sound left in the room.
Youâre quiet for a beat, stunned into silence. The heat of his anger, his frustration, it radiates off him, and you realize suddenly that this isnât just about you.Â
It never was.
âThen show me,â you challenge softly, your heart pounding in your chest. âShow me that you donât hate me.â
Joelâs eyes darken, his head cocking to the side as he searches your face for a sign. You donât say anything, you only square your shoulders and raise your chin, your eyes just as hard as his own.
âI want you to prove it.â
The tension snaps like a rubber band stretched too far.Â
You shouldnâtâthis shouldnâtâhappen. Not like this. Not after everything thatâs been said.
But when Joelâs lips crash against yours, hot and desperate and urgent, it makes everything blur into nothing.Â
Itâs not gentle, not softâthis is anger and longing and frustration all wrapped into one. Itâs messy, frantic, like a fight thatâs been brewing for too long.
He grips your arm, pulling you closer, almost too roughly, but it feels like itâs everything youâve both been avoiding.
His other hand moves to cup the back of your neck, grounding you as his lips press harder against yours, like heâs trying to pour everything he canât say into this single moment.
You respond just as fiercely, nails digging into the skin of his shoulders as you kiss him back with all the pent-up emotion thatâs been simmering beneath the surface.
The coarse hair of his beard scrapes against the skin of your chin deliciously, the scent of blood and firewood filling your senses as his arm wraps around your waist, dragging you impossibly closer.
Close enough that you can feel the wild beat of his heart booming against your chest.
You pull away for a second, breathless, both of you looking at each other, your eyes wide and pupils blown.
âGoddamn it,â Joel mutters, his voice thick with frustration and something else you canât place. He presses his forehead to yours, the deep brown of his eyes dark than before. âWhat the hell are we doing?â
You donât have an answer. Youâre not sure if you even want one.
You reach for him again, arms looping around his neck to drag his mouth back to yours.
This kiss is nothing like the first, it isnât a clash of frustrationâitâs filthier, rawer. A near feral thing, all teeth and tongue, a surge of hunger and need that borders on violence.Â
Joel groans into your mouth, a low, guttural sound that sends a shiver racing down your spine. His teeth catch your bottom lip, pulling just hard enough to make you gasp.
He takes advantage of the sound, his tongue sweeping into your mouth to slide against yours with wet, messy desperation, like heâs trying to claim every inch of you.
The taste of himâsalt and iron and something distinctly Joelâmakes your head spin.Â
Your fingers knot into the chocolaty curls at the nape of his neck, surprisingly soft to the touch. His own hands roam the soft curves of your body, rough and insistent, like he canât decide where he wants to touch you most.
âJoelââ His name spills from your lips like a plea, and he answers with a deep, guttural noise that sends heat pooling low in your belly. His tongue follows the path of his teeth, soothing the bites with lazy, deliberate strokes that make your knees weak.
Youâre moving before you even realize it. Joel dragging you across the room and down onto the couch with him, using the strength heâs built up after all these years to manhandle you until your thighs are spread wide on either side of his lap.
âJoel,â you gasp again, rearing back enough to break the kiss. âYour stitchesââ
He cuts you off with a sharp nip to the sensitive spot behind your ear, tearing a high whine from your throat. âCan hardly feel âem.â
You make a displeased sound, but itâs undermined by the way you tilt your head to give his wandering lips more room. His hands find a home on your hips, one slipping beneath your shirt to press against the soft skin of your stomach.Â
His fingers splay wide across your skin, his palm callused and rough. His pinky just barely brushes the underside of your breast, and youâre suddenly rearing back.Â
âWait,â you say, your voice barely a whisper.
Joelâs hands immediately loosen their grip on your hips, his brows knitting together in concern. âYou okay?â
You nod quickly, your heart pounding in your chest. âI just...I need to tell you something.â
His jaw tightens slightly, but he stays quiet, waiting for you to speak.
You take a beat, chewing at the skin of your bottom lip nervously.
âIâve never...â You pause, swallowing hard as your cheeks heat up. âIâve never done this before. I mean, Iâve never been with anyone like this.â
Joel pulls back slightly, his expression unreadable as he processes your words. For a moment, you think he might pull away completely, but then he exhales a long, slow breath.
âChrist,â he mutters, scrubbing a hand down his face. âYouâre tellinâ me this now?â
âI didnât exactly plan for this to happen,â you snap back, crossing your arms over your chest defensively. âItâs not like I had the luxury of a high school sweetheart to pop my cherry out here.â
Joelâs gaze softens at your tone, and he reaches out to cup your cheek, his thumb brushing against your skin. âHey, hey, I didnât mean it like that.â
You glance away, suddenly feeling self-conscious under the weight of his stare. âI just...I wanted you to know. But I want this, Joel. I want you.â
His thumb stills against your cheek, and he swallows hard, his adamâs apple bobbing as he considers your words.
âI donât...â He pauses, the most hesitant youâve ever heard him. âI donât want to hurt you.â
Itâs the most vulnerable heâs been around you, round eyes shining with something so raw and so earnest it makes your heart ache in your chest.Â
âYou wonât,â you insist, your voice steady despite the nerves fluttering in your stomach. âI trust you.â
Joelâs jaw clenches, and for a moment, he looks like heâs going to argue. But then he nods, his shoulders relaxing as he cups the back of your neck, pulling you closer until your foreheads touch again.
âAt least let me do this right,â he murmurs, his voice so soft you almost donât hear it. âNot here. Not on some goddamn couch.â
You blink up at him, surprised by the tenderness in his tone. âWhat?â
âUpstairs,â he says, his thumb tracing lazy circles against the side of your neck. âThereâs a bed up there. It ainât much, but itâs better than this.â
You canât do anything but nod, your pulse racing beneath your skin fast enough to combat the cold night air seeping through the walls.
âOkay,â you say softly, voice barely above a whisper. âUpstairs.â
Joel stands, gently pulling you to feet and taking your hand in his. He leads you upstairs, each step feeling heavier with anticipation. The small bedroom is dimly lit, the faint glow of moonlight filtering through a broken blind.Â
The bed isnât muchâan old mattress on a worn frame, covered with a patched-up blanketâbut it doesnât matter.
Joel shuts the door behind you, the sound of the latch clicking into place sending a shiver down your spine.
âLast chance,â he says, his voice a low rumble. âYou say the word, and we stop. No questions asked.â
Your throat tightens at the sincerity in his tone, the way heâs giving you an out even though you can see the strain in every line of his body, the way his hands flex at his sides like he wants nothing more than to reach out and touch you.
But you donât hesitate.
You step closer, placing your hands on his bare chest. You bite back a smile at the goosebumps that break out all along his skin at your touch.Â
âJesus, Miller,â you mumble teasingly, nails lightly scratching through the salt and pepper hair scattered along his chest. âHow long are you gonna drag this out before you get it through your thick skull that I want to fuck you?â
"Christ." Joel huffs, shaking his head as the corners of his lips turn up in a small grin. âLike I fuckinâ said,â he starts, big hands kneading the meat of your hips. âPushy.â
Joel walks you backward until the backs of your knees hit the edge of the bed, and you fall onto it with a soft gasp.
He follows you immediately, crawling over you, his body covering yours, his weight a comforting pressure. âIâll take care of you,â he murmurs, his lips brushing yours. âIâll make it good for you, I swear.â
His fingers are everywhere, unbuttoning your shirt with a practiced ease that has your pulse racing. His lips follow the path of his hands, each touch a branding mark, each kiss leaving you wanting more.
âPretty girl,â he mutters softly, pressing a kiss right between the valley of your breasts.
You feel his cock stirring against your stomach, and it makes the ache between your legs flare to life, the weight of it, the hardness of it, driving you crazy with need.Â
You want him so badly you can barely think straight, but when his lips graze over your collarbone, you canât stop the quiet whine that escapes your throat.
Joel growls in response, a sound that resonates deep in his chest, and you know then that heâs as far gone as you are. His hands slide down to the waistband of your pants, tugging them down your legs with urgency.Â
As your skin is exposed to the cool air, you can feel the heat of his gaze on you, like heâs memorizing every inch of you.
âYouâre fuckin' perfect,â he mutters, his voice thick with desire.
Joel's hands find your thighs, parting them with a deliberate slowness that makes your breath catch in your throat. He positions himself between your legs, his body weight pressing you into the mattress, his chest rising and falling with the same frantic rhythm as yours.Â
The anticipation is almost unbearable as his fingers trace the line of your panties, the fabric damp with want.
âJesus, sheâs drippinâ for me already,â he mutters, voice rough, as he slides the material to the side, his thumb brushing over the sensitive swell of your clit.
Your body jerks at the contact, a desperate sound escaping your lips, but Joel doesnât relent.
âYou touch yourself down here, baby?â he asks, working tortuously slow circles over your clit.
"Please," you beg, your hands grasping at the sheets, pulling at them as if they can anchor you to the moment.
He looks up at you, his gaze dark and filled with an intensity that makes your stomach tighten. âAsked you a question, honey.â
You whine, high and loud in your throat as your thighs clench desperately around his wrist. âYes, I touch myself.â
Joelâs lips curl into a satisfied grin, sliding his thick index finger through the messy wetness to slip inside your clenching hole, making you gasp. Your hands grasp at the sheets, pulling at them as if they can anchor you to the moment.
âGood girl,â he breathes, eyes darkening at the broken moan that bursts from your lips. âWhenâs the last time you touched yourself?â
Your brain feels hazy as you search for the answer, pleasure clouding your mind slow and sweet as molasses. âAâa few nights ago.â
Joel hums idly, slipping a second finger alongside the first. The stretch has you whining, his fingers a lot more to take than your own.
Your hands come up to claw at his shoulders, relishing in the way his broad muscle ripples and shifts beneath your greedy palms.
âJoel,â you whine, hips canting down against his hand impatiently.
He just shushes you softly, free hand brushing soothing circles along the skin of your inner thigh. âI know, honey,â he mutters, the pace fingers speeding up. âBut I gotta get her nice and ready if you wanna take my cock.â
The gush of your pussy around his fingers is loud in the stillness of the room, a filthy wet noise that burns your ears each time he plunges them into your aching hole.
âI am ready.â Your breath hitches as your body begins to tremble beneath him. âPlease, Joelâfuckâplease, I needââ
âNeed what?â His voice is thick with dark amusement, but there's a hunger in his eyes that has your stomach twisting. âTell me, baby. What do you need?â
âI need you,â you rasp, your nails digging little crescent moons into his skin, your body pleading for release. âI need you inside me.â
Your hands grab at his hair, pulling him back up to meet your lips in a feverish kiss.Â
The pressure of his body on yours, the way his hard cock grinds against your trembling thigh, drives you to the brink of madness.Â
Your hands trail down his chest, past the waistband of his jeans, finally reaching the bulge straining against the fabric.
Joel groans when you rub him through his pants, feeling his cock twitch in response. He pulls back, breathing heavily, his lips curling into a smirk.Â
âYeah?â he asks, his voice thick with lust. âYou want my cock in this pretty pussy? Want me to show you how good it feels to be fucked?â
âGod, yes,â you answer, desperation lacing your tone as your hand moves to unbuckle his jeans. âWant it so bad.â
He lets you push his pants down just enough to free his cock, and you gasp, your eyes drawn to the way his length stands, thick and hard, just waiting for you. The tip flushed an angry red, drooling pre-come onto the scratchy sheets.
Joel pulls his fingers from you, using his hands spreading your legs wider, positioning himself between them with such careful precision that you can barely stand it.
The head of his cock drags through the mess between your legs, slipping all the way down till it catches on your soaked entrance.
Joel pauses, looking down at you, waiting for your signal, but the only answer you give is a pleading whimper, your hands pulling at his shoulders, urging him to move.
His mouth captures yours once again as he slowly slides into you, the stretch of his cock filling you steadily, making you gasp into his mouth.Â
The slow burn of him carving a place for himself inside of you is almost too much, your body trembling as you adjust to the feeling of him.
âFuck, baby,â Joel mutters against your lips. âYouâre so tight, so fuckinâ perfect for me.â
As he sinks deeper into you, his thick cock finally buried to the hilt inside of you, the feeling is overwhelming. You gasp, nails digging into his back as the pain slowly shifts into pleasure.
Joel groans into your mouth, his hands moving to your hips, guiding you as he rocks gently against you.Â
The rhythm is slow at first, deliberate, as if he's savoring every inch of you. Your body quivers beneath him, every inch of your skin tingling with sensation. You clutch at him, your legs tightening around his waist, needing more, wanting more.
"That's it," he murmurs, his voice thick with desire. "Take it, baby."
You screw your eyes shut tightly, trying to steady yourself as he thrusts deeper, harder. The angle shifts just enough to make your breath catch in your throat.Â
Every stroke feels like itâs hitting the deepest part of you, sparking heat in places you never knew could burn so hot.
"Fuck," you gasp, the sensation too overwhelming, too much in the best way. "Joel... please..."
"Please what, sweetheart?" He pulls back slightly, teasing you with a slow roll of his hips before driving back in with a grunt.
Your nails dig into his shoulders, urging him to move faster, harder. "Donât stop," you breathe, your voice trembling. "I need you to fuck me, Joel. Faster. Harder. Please."
The sound of skin slapping against skin fills the room as Joel finally picks up the pace, each thrust harder and deeper than the last.
Your back arches off the bed, chest pressing flush to his as your body coils tighter and tighter, already so close to the edge.
Joel reaches up to take your wrist in his, dragging your hand down to press flat against your lower stomach.
âFeel that?â he asks breathlessly, the speed of his hips knocking the dingy bed frame into the wall with every thrust. âYou feel how deep I am?â
His own hand blankets yours, pushing down so you can feel the way his cock punches up against your palm on the next thrust.
Your pussy clenches desperately around him at the feeling, your slick lips dropping open on a loud moan.
You can barely hold on. The heat in your stomach tightens, coiling painfully as your free hand scrambles to find purchase on his skin. "I can'tâI'm gonnaâ"
He grits his teeth, his jaw clenched as he drives deeper, pushing you closer and closer to the edge. "Come for me, baby," he growls, his voice dark and commanding. "Let me feel it."
With a strangled cry, you finally release, your body clenching around him, every nerve igniting in a white-hot explosion of pleasure.Â
Youâre lost in it, your world spinning, your senses overwhelmed by the sensation of Joelâs body pounding into yours, the way his cock brushes against that sweet spot behind your clit enough to make sparks go off behind your eyelids.
Joel pulls out of your velvety warmth, hand coming up to fist his dripping length until heâs bowing over you tightly and coming with a deep groan of your name.
His release paints your stomach with milky strands of white, rope after rope of warm come claiming you in a way no one has before.
He finally collapses against you with one last shuddering breath, both of you breathing heavily, your chests rising and falling together in the quiet aftermath.
For a few moments, neither of you speaks, the only sounds are the soft creak of the bed and the quiet hum of your racing hearts.Â
Joel rests his head against your shoulder, his breath warm against your skin, and you can feel the tension begin to slip away, the weight of everything thatâs happened between you both settling into something newâsomething different, but still there.
Your hand slips down the sweaty expanse of your stomach, your fingers swiping through the sticky mess of his release curiously.
âChrist, quit that,â Joel groans, tearing his eyes away from the sight to press his forehead against your shoulder.
âWhy?â you hum, brow raised in amusement as you drop your hand back to the mattress. âCan you even get it up again?â
Joel pinches your side hard enough to make you squeal, your body flinching away from him as a surprised laugh bubbles from your chest.
âWatch it,â he warns, though thereâs no bite to his tone. You only laugh in response.
The two of you settle into a comfortable silence, wrapped in each other as crickets chirp from outside the window.
Then Joel clears his throat, fingers idly tracing different shapes on the skin of your hip as he gathers the courage to speak.
A circle, a square, a diamond, a circle, a heart, a heart, a heart.
âIâmâŠâ he starts, trailing off softly. âIâm sorry. Iâve been a real fuckinâ prick, and you didnât deserve it. You never did.â
You turn your own gaze to his chest, hand coming up so you can trail your fingers along the jagged scar decorating his shoulder. Your touch featherlight over the rough patch of skin.
All the anger seeps from your body, a heavy weight gone until you feel so light you could float off the mattress and into the cold night air.
âItâs okay,â you whisper softly, so soft you think it gets lost in the quiet darkness of the room. âI understand now.â
And for the first time in what feels like forever, you both just lay there, tangled in each other, not worrying about the world outside, about the chaos that waits.Â
Just you, him, and the soft glow of moonlight.
tags are now in the comments! if you want to get tagged for any of my works just fill out this form!
mini nat's note: should i add joel to my taglist...i do kinda want to write more for him in the future but i'm not sure yet...lmk chickens <3 bee tee dubs sorry the ending absolutely sucks i could not for the life of me figure out how to end this LMAO
#â đŻđąđ”đąđđȘđą đžđłđȘđ”đŠđŽ âĄ#áŻâ
đ§đđ'đŹ đ©đđ«đŹđšđ§đđ„ đŁđšđđ„ đŠđąđ„đ„đđ«!#natalia cant write anything under 1.000 words#pls be sweet to me#i'm so nervous to post this lmao#love you!#joel miller x reader#joel miller x you#joel miller x female reader#joel miller x y/n#joel miller fic#joel miller smut#tlou x reader#tlou x you#tlou fic#tlou smut#the last of us x reader#the last of us x you#the last of us smut#pedro pascal x reader#pedro pascal x you#pedro pascal x y/n#pedro pascal smut
3K notes
·
View notes
Text
âŠI Wonder
Pairing: Spencer Reid x fem!Reader Summary: Reader becomes a full-time nanny to three-year-old Benjamin, but what she doesnât realize is just how hard the job will beâ not because of the child, but rather her growing attraction to his father. Category: Mature (18+) Content: adults with age gap, drinking, dry humping, oral sex (both receiving), fingering, unprotected vaginal sex, âlittle girlâ nickname, cum play, praise Word Count: 11k (idk how this keeps happening lol)
MASTERLIST
NOTE: This fic is titled after and loosely inspired by "Pony" by Ashley Monroe. It's not required listening, but obviously I recommend the song. It's been a favorite of mine since I was a teenager obsessed with Dean Winchester, so... that probably explains a lot about why I am the way I am... LMAO anyway, enjoy <3 I had a blast writing this one!!
âââ
ACT I: If I Had A Baby...
The first job I ever had also happened to be the best job I ever had. I was twenty years old, and I found an ad in the paper searching for a full-time nanny to a little boy. I didn't think anything of it, other than I desperately needed the money and I didn't mind babysitting. A few years out of school with no plans to attend college and no solid idea of what I wanted to do with my life, I wasn't sure if I'd even get hired. I was almost certain that no one would want a college-aged kid with no stable ambitions or previous job experience, but I was desperate. And CPR-certified.
It was a start. A shot in the dark.
By some miracle, Spencer Reid apparently was also desperate enough to be willing to take a chance on me.
He explained over the phone that he was away more than he'd like to be, and even if he tried to work from home, doing FBI work and raising a toddler alone at the same time was nearly impossible. I agreed to an interview, absolutely elated that I had a foot in the door and the bright beacon of hope for some sort of routine. Something to occupy my time and something to care about, to care for.
I was expecting the work to be... not hard, necessarily, but I wasn't naive enough to believe that taking care of a child was a walk in the park. There would surely be tantrums or bouts of "I miss Daddy!" or refusal to eat what I made him for lunch... I knew going into these interviews that I would be signing up for a major responsibility that meant a lot, not only to Spencer but also to his child. I had to prove that I could do my job and do it well. That alone was a challenge, but one I was willing to work with. I was ready for it.
What I wasn't ready for, however, was the betrayal I felt when my brain failed to warn me of the possibility that he was not only a single father, but a hot one.
The second I showed up at his door and he opened the barrier between us, I swear it felt like the sun swallowed me whole and burnt me to a crisp. He smiled brightly and introduced himself, and I was done for.
"You must be Y/N! Hi, I'm Doctor Spencer Reid."
Doctor? So he was smart, then, too. Perfect. The Trifecta of Peak Hotness had been achieved. That instantly made this new job ten-times harder than I anticipated, and I hadn't even started yet.
I wasn't sure I could go through with it at first, but the more we talked, the more I relaxed, and I felt sympathy for him. He was a genuinely kind and loving parent who wanted the best for his son, a three-year-old named Benjamin who loved dinosaurs and airplanes and Cheeto Puffs. I didn't get to meet him that day, since he was with his Aunt JJ (who, the way Spencer told it, was most likely feeding his Cheeto Puff addiction as we spoke), but if the interview went well, I'd get to meet him in the next week.
I mulled over my options and almost decided not to show up for the next interview; to call and tell him I'd changed my mind or something, but it pained me to even imagine the disappointment in his voice had he asked me why. For whatever reason, the vivid image of a toddler pouting and crying to his father because he had to leave, and that no one wanted to care for him burned itself into my soul until I relented and just took the job anyway.
It was fair to at least meet the kid first, right?
Benny was insanely talkativeâ but not really conversational. Most of the time I tried to keep up, but his mouth was moving a mile a minute, and the conversation always ended up falling flat on my end, so I pretty quickly decided to give up and enthusiastically let him carry it.
He had his father's brains as well. For hours that first meeting, he sat there and read me passages of aircraft encyclopedias, and in between two random sections I politely requested that we move on to dinosaurs (which were infinitely cooler). And then, in that adorable toddler voice that made it impossible to be irritated, he looked up at me with wide eyes and said, "I read all my dinosaur books last week. This week is for airplanes."
Spencer looked like he was going to divert the conversation entirely, perhaps suggest that Benny do something else while we talked some more, but who was I to interrupt the kid's routine and crush his dreams? If I was going to be his nanny, then I was going to have to make him like me. Right?
So, I nodded like I'd never considered it and encouraged him to keep going. To which he did, very happily.
Spencer seemed happy, too. He was always delighted to see Benny when he came home from work, but there was something about the way he relaxed and perked up all the same at my first interactions with his son that twisted my gut. What that man was filled with at the sight of me wasn't just joy, but hope, too, and regardless of where that joy and hope came from, it was an incredibly dangerous thing to notice as a young woman.
It was way too easy to fall into daydream territory. I was alert and attentive when watching Benny, of course, but the second Spencer walked in and completely knocked the wind out of me with that joy and relief radiating from his perfect smile, it was like a screw came loose in my brain and turned me into a feral, horny beast. And then I would return home, alone with my thoughts, and I couldn't divert them from the wild direction they took.
At first it was just your standard wet dream, a girl lusting over the older man she nannied for. It was purely pornographic and provided nothing but short-term relief until I saw him in person again, which frustrated me.
I almost thought about quitting, or saying I was looking into schooling so I could cut down on my hours, but...
That wasn't fair to Benny. He and I had actually formed a pretty stellar routine, if I do say so myself.
And every time I thought about leaving, I couldn't help but think about what I would tell him. Would I even tell him anything at all, or would Spencer just omit me from his life completely and give him an explanation in my place? Who would watch over him after I left? Someone old and mean who made him eat vegetables instead of Cheeto Puffs, and demanded he read to them about dinosaurs instead of airplanes, not giving him the option to develop his curiosity in whatever way he chose? Who would tuck him into bed on the nights his father was late or out of town, and would they sleep on the couch soundly and happily like I did?
I hated even thinking about it.
And then there was the first paycheck.
Truth be told, I hadn't even thought about the money, not after I met the boys and introduced them into my daily routine. I remembered Spencer telling me after my first day alone with Benny that he wouldn't get a paycheck to me until the start of the next month, and I was okay with it. Really, I was just focusing on trying not to drool for the entire conversation, but I digress.
Payment completely slipped my mind.
And then I showed up to do my job, and Benny was nowhere in sight.
"Where's the little guy?" I inquired, looking around and hearing nothing either. "He's usually waiting at the door for me like a dog."
Spencer laughed and concealed something behind his back. "He does really enjoy his nights with you... He's actually staying with JJ and her kids tonight, though. Our schedules opened up and she offered to take him for the night. I was going to call and tell you, but I wanted to give you this, anyway."
He handed me an envelope, folded over but not sealed. I took it with an, "Oh," unsure of what it was until I saw the corner of the check. It felt rude somehow to open it in front of him, but his presence was so overwhelming anyway, especially being alone with him, that I needed something to occupy my hands and my thoughts and just about everything else I had in my possession.
At first, I thought it was a joke. A prank. It was too good to be true; He was just messing with me and would hand me a fifty-dollar bill on my way out for my trouble. Surely, if not that, then it was a mistake.
I didn't know how long I'd stood there, staring at the paper with whatever expression was all over my face, but it must have been too long and too concerning because Spencer sounded worried when he asked, "Is there something wrong?"
I blinked for a moment, then finally had the courage to look him in the eye, my mouth completely dry. "You are not giving me five-thousand dollars right now."
"Well... No, technically, I'm giving you a check for five-thousand dollars. What you do with it and when is completely up to you, but... You deserve it. Y/N, you've been a Godsend, and Benny and I are lucky to have you around. Thank you. Very much."
I didn't even think about it. It was an insanely kind gesture, and I was in such a state of shock and gratitude and mind-numbing attraction to him in that moment that I leapt forward and flung my arms around his neck, tears stinging my eyes.
He hugged me back tightly and laughed, allowing me to cry my thanks into his shoulder as we nearly tumbled into the coffee table.
ACT II: If I Was A Lady...
The months flew by, and before I knew it, it was Benny's fourth birthday.
Spencer and his friends heavily involved me in the planning process, a gesture that surprised me, but that I obviously would never be thankful enough for. It's not like I hadn't ever known a loving family or anything, but they were all so warm and welcoming; it was like I'd been friends with them my whole life. My chest bloomed brightly with every laugh and every hug, and I don't think I could have been any happier. I felt like I belonged there.
It was a day, and night, I would never forget.
Everyone had left, and Benny was fast asleep in his bed. Spencer and I looked down at him with smiles so bright, if they'd actually radiated any light the poor boy would have woken up.
"Ah, the cake coma," I laughed quietly, Spencer guiding me out of the bedroom. I couldn't stop giggling even as we walkedâAdmittedly, I was a little buzzed on champagne. Still, Spencer laughed with me, and we sat down on the couch. I could tell he was exhausted, but happy.
"I still have to clean all of this up..." It was more of an amused I'll-do-it-tomorrow statement, but I had this drunken simmering need to please him so badly that I shook my head and hit his arm.
"No. That's my job. I'll take care of it, you just take your beautiful ass right to bed, you hear me?"
He raised an eyebrow but laughed at me anyway, clearly amused by my banter. "Maybe I shouldn't have allowed the underage drinking after all..."
"Oh, please. I'm not even drunk, just a little loose. Besides, I'll be twenty-one in a couple of months anyway."
"Mmmm."
I hadn't realized how much closer we'd gotten until just then, when he hummed and looked me over. I could feel his breath on my face, and our limbs were just barely touching. Suddenly it was like my entire body was numb, sizzling everywhere we touched, and the champagne had become a part of my bloodstream. The fizz was all I knew, all I was.
Spencer's eyes found mine, and they didn't look away. They pulled me in slowly. I was powerless to stop it, not that I'd ever want to...
In fact, I very eagerly melted into him the second our lips found each other. My head swam, my fingers started tingling, and I was very aware of every movement we made. I straddled his lap, and he welcomed me with open arms, pulling me flush against him as his tongue darted out swiftly to taste mine.
I couldn't believe it was actually happening. Every few seconds I kept thinking to myself, this feels like a dream... It has to be a dream... Between the pent-up attraction I'd been accumulating for him over the last few months and the alcohol that loosened me up and dissolved any ounce of common sense I possessed, I felt like I was in a different world entirely.
He hardened underneath me and my nerves went nuclear, instinctively forcing my body to roll over his. I ground my hips, aching to feel that sweet friction that I'd only felt once before with another manâ so long ago and so unbelievably dull in comparison to the sensations I was feeling in Spencer's lap. I was only barely experienced with sex, but I was experienced enough to know that I didn't have anything to be nervous about; This man would take good care of me. I felt it in my bones.
The thought alone sent my body into overdrive. I whined and rolled my hips relentlessly, wishing I was completely bare and feeling him so deep inside me that his absence would leave me haunted. I wanted to feel him forever. I wanted him to ruin my life and claim me as his own, until there was absolutely nothing left of me.
His hands cradled my head reverently as he continued to kiss me deep and slow, raising his hips up to meet mine and aid in getting me off. The gentle tugs of his fingers through my hair and the warm hums of encouragement he offered to my mouth as I climbed higher and higher towards that precipice of pleasure made me weak. I felt so fragile in his arms, like I was meant to be right there, allowing him to guide me wherever. I would have done anything for him, anything so long as he kept holding me and making me sighâmaking me glow.
"FuckâI'm gonna come," I exclaimed in a broken whisper, breaking apart from his mouth to bury my face in his hair. He brought his hands down to my hips then, groaning as quietly as he could into my neck as he helped me rock back and forth across his lap.
It wasn't an earth-shattering intense orgasm by any means; there wasn't nearly enough stimulation for that. But I was so wet and aroused that even the low, quick and burning pleasure that shot through my core for a few seconds was enough to satisfy me. I wasn't in any position to complain.
That was, of course, until I reached down to touch Spencer's belt, and he pushed me away. Not aggressively, but his handsâwhich had been so gentle and welcoming just moments beforeâhad gone rigid. Frozen and firm, like he'd just been scared half to death.
He scrambled out from my reach and put so much distance between us that I went cold. My name tumbled from his lips in a regretful sigh, and it stung.
"We can't ever do that again."
"Okay," was all I could manage to say. I was still tingling all over, like my whole body had fallen numb and was now just warming up to the idea of having senses again.
"That was irresponsible. And I'm too old for you."
"M-hm," I agreed absentmindedly.
"You should go home."
"Okay."
"I'll call you a cab."
"Thank you."
I went home that night with a deep twist in my gut that wouldn't go away. The rejection hurt. It scared me, too, wondering if I'd still have a job when I woke up in the morning. Was that the last time I would ever see Spencer? And Benny? Had I really just screwed up the best thing that ever happened to me?
I barely slept. Every time I closed my eyes, I was back on Spencer's couch, getting myself off in his lap and reveling in his embrace. I woke up in the middle of the night in a cold sweat, hating myself for being so reckless, and even more so for not regretting it a single bit.
After I was finally able to get a solid couple of hours of sleep, I had a text message from Spencer waiting for me when I woke up.
I sincerely apologize for last night. The job is still yours, but I also understand if you don't want it anymore. Take a few days, whatever time you need, and let me know.
I was relieved, of course, but also deeply curious to know how we would keep things professional after something like that. I guess I was just mostly surprised that he was willing to, considering he seemed pretty rattled by it.
Still, If he was willing to try, then so was I.
I'm sorry, too. I wouldn't give up you and Benjamin for the world. All is well?
He texted back almost immediately;Â All is well.
It only clicked into place a few months later, once the initial shock of our "escapade" had faded away and we could return to business as normal. Because, really, the truth was we couldn't return to business as normal. We tried, but he never looked me in the eye for longer than a second at a time, he refused to touch me in any way, careful not to even brush my hand as he handed me my monthly check, and his small talk was even more painful than it had been previously.
Still, I continued to be Benny's nannyâand best friend, according to Auntie Penelope, much to her dismay. I still loved that kid more than anything in the world, and I still, unfortunately, wanted his father to kiss me again.
I was willing to let it all go, though, to admit that it was a silly stupid crush that could never come to anything and just deal with it like an adult, and then I had to overhear the motherfucker when he came home one night. I was resting on the couch, about to open my eyes when I heard the door open, but then I heard a voice that wasn't Spencer's. It was his friend, Luke.
Spencer cut him off then. "Quiet, please."
There was shuffling, keys being set down, and then a small laugh as they got closer to me. I didn't move a muscle, focusing only on my breathing. "Right. Don't wake the hot nanny, got it."
"She's right there," Spencer hissed, and I tried not to laugh. My insides flared to life as he added, "And I asked you not to bring that up..."
"Oh, come on, Reid. You have the hots for her; big deal. It's normal."
"So? I'm... I'm technically her boss, and she's far too young for me. It's not right, and you know that."
"Whatever. You do what you think is right, man, but I'm telling you; Ignoring it is only going to make you more stressed."
Spencer mumbled something incoherent, and the two shuffled off into the kitchen for God-knows-what. All I could think about was that he wanted me. It was probably killing him just as badly as it was killing me not to give into each other again. My mind was racing, my heart beat violently in my chest, and I knew then that I had to pretend to wake up or else I'd sit there and burst into flames.
I had to leave. I had to do something; What, I didn't know, but this revelation had me reeling and feeling a myriad of things, and I needed to sit with them, preferably alone so I wasn't tempted to just jump him on the spot.
"Did we wake you? I'm sorry." Spencer's kind voice warmed me from the inside out as I shuffled into the kitchen to say goodbye.
I quickly gathered my things and avoided his gaze. "Oh. No, you didn't. If you're back for the night though, I'm gonna go home. I'm exhausted."
"Little guy was that rambunctious, huh?" Luke joked.
I smiled and gave him a wink. "Oh, no. He was an absolute angel, as always. His daddy raised him well. Goodnight. See you tomorrow, Doctor Reid?"
He cleared his throat, rasping out, "Yes, tomorrow. Goodnight."
"Night."
I tried not to run mischievously out the door, willing my legs to be normal. But the second there was a tangible barrier between us, I bolted to my car, high on adrenaline and unable to wipe the smile from my face; I was wide awake.
Eventually, though, I realized it would be absolutely stupid to do anything about it. Did it boost my ego and my mood? Absolutely. It also softened the blow of his avoidance and his initial rejection that night; All of his behavior made much more sense. Sure, I was a little disappointed that he wouldn't entertain our mutual desire, but as long as it was there... It couldn't be that bad, right?
Wrong.
I'd gotten a text from him earlier in the day, asking if I could come over last minute to watch Benny. I wasn't going to say no, obviously, but when I got there to see him dressed up, I shot up an eyebrow.
"A little fancy for work, yeah?" I told him, hanging my keys up and listening for Benny.
"Oh, I'm... not going to work, actually. I, uh... I have a date."
I froze. I panicked. I didn't know what to do, what to think, or how to react. Naturally my thoughts immediately jumped to the worst-case scenarioâvisions of Spencer sleeping with another woman, someone older and not a nanny. Someone who was distinguished and well-read and smart, someone like himself. Someone who was more inherently right for him. It... made me sad.
Admittedly, I felt stupid even thinking that way. It wasn't my right to dictate his dating life, no matter how badly I wanted him; I knew what he tasted like, knew how it felt to come undone in his embrace, and yet I wasn't entitled to him solely based on that.
Still. It doesn't mean I had to like it.
"Oh... Um... Good for you," I told him, nodding and turning away in case he tried to profile me. "Have fun."
He said goodbye to Benny a few minutes later, and then gave me a polite, transactional wave on his way out the door. It shut, and it felt like my chest was collapsing.
But I was only able to wallow for a few seconds. Benny tugged on my sleeve and looked up at me quizzically.
"Auntie Y/N, are you sad?"
His sweet face lifted my spirits like it always did, and I didn't have the energy to think about the other emotions that were swimming around in my chest anyway. So I smiled at him and picked him up, shaking my head. "Not anymore, kiddo; I get to hang out with my favorite person!"
We spent all night munching on Cheeto Puffs and building Lego sets, and it was unsurprising to me that by the time I'd finished one, Benny had finished three. Still, our sets combined to make a larger one, and then we were able to give the people names and backstories and adventures.
Either time passed very quickly, or Spencer didn't last very long on his date, because the front door opened and I was surprised he was home before I could put Benny to bed.
"Daddy!" he exclaimed, running and dropping his half-eaten Cheeto Puff in my lap. I laughed and tossed it in the trash can on my way to the door, greeting Spencer, who was hugging his son tightly and making him giggle profusely.
"You're home early," I observed as he set him down.
"Had to make it home before curfew, of course." A joke. He was deflecting. I kind of hated that I felt relief at the insinuation.
"Of course," I agreed.
"So, what did you guys do while I was gone?"
Benny jumped and grabbed his father's hand. "Auntie Y/N and I made a whole Lego village! It has a library!"
"It does?" Spencer asked bending down to his level and positively beaming. The sight made my chest tighten.
"It really does! Do you want to come see?"
"Oh, absolutely. I just have to talk to Auntie Y/N first, and I'll be right in, is that okay?" He nodded and Spencer ruffled his hair. "Okay. Say goodnight."
Benny turned and ran to me then, and I squatted down to hug him. "Goodnight, Auntie Y/N. Thank you for building with me."
"Oh, you're welcome, kiddo. You're an excellent building partner; The best in the business."
He laughed and scampered off to his bedroom, and as I stood up, I felt Spencer's eyes on me. I couldn't decipher what the feeling was on his end, but regardless, it burned a hole through me and made my heart pound in my ears.
"How'd it go?" I asked casually, dusting Cheeto off my jeans. Did you do it just to forget about how much you want me? Did it work?
He shrugged and leaned against the counter with a lazy smile. He almost looked exhausted. "I'd have much rather liked to be at home with my boy and his best friend to tell you the truth."
My heart was racing, and I couldn't help but wonder what he was getting at. Was he fucking with me? Or was he simply telling the honest, innocent truth, while I was letting my lust take the drivers' seat and go searching for some insane imaginary intention to help along my hot-single-father/nanny fantasy?
Suddenly, I was the one who felt exhausted, and Spencer could tell. He shifted and continued talking. "Thank you again for staying with him on such short notice."
"Oh, anytime. It's what I'm here for. In fact, feel free to go on all the bad dates you want."
I don't know why it came out of my mouth, but I was glad that Spencer laughed. Still, I scrambled to get my keys and walked past him to leave, kind of embarrassed by the verbalized impulsive thought regardless.
His hand grabbed my arm gently before I could leave, and my heart caught in my throat. I dared to look up at him and immediately felt that familiar heat return to my core, suddenly very fragile under the weight of his gaze.
He studied me for a moment before he let go of my arm and cleared his throat. "Goodnight."
I couldn't help the feeling that he wanted to tell me something else. He did say he wanted to talk to me before putting Benny to bed, after all... So, what? That was it?
It was stupid, and I should have just told him, "Goodnight," back, but those damned impulsive thoughts kept dancing on my tongue with reckless abandon, and I couldn't stop them from escaping. So, without another thought, I tilted my head and asked him instead, "Was she my age?"
Spencer stared at me, something darkening in his eyes when he responded, "No."
I threw back one of his considering hums, glancing down at his lips before looking him directly in the eye and giving him a firm, "Oh." There were plenty more things I could have told him, none of them appropriate. But I figured I'd already had enough pushing my luck for the night, and reached for the doorknob instead of dragging it out. The night would end like it always did, with a formal, professional farewell.
I was about to finally tell him, "Goodnight," but his hand came down very gently over mine and rendered me silent. Our eyes met once more, and a shiver ran down my spine.
"Even if she had been, she wouldn't have been you."
And then he opened the door for me, and I walked out without another word, my head spinning and my heart threatening to give out on me. He hadn't even kissed me, but he might as well have; I was just as breathless.
ACT III: He Is Nice, But He Looks So Mean.
I was actually littered with nerves walking in the door the next time I came over to watch Benny.
I hadn't heard anything from Spencer for a week, until he called and asked me to come over for the night to watch him while he went to work. I was going to do it with no questions asked, obviously, but because that insane confession was echoing in my mind on a continuous loop since it happened, I couldn't even bring myself to think about seeing him again and knowing... I had no idea what reaction my body was going to have to being in his presence again.
It scared me, but also deeply excited me.
Once my body had enough courage to step through the doorway, my heart rate sped up exponentially, and then upon seeing what was in front of me, it stuttered with a terrifying halt.
Warmth flooded my veins and brought a smile to my face when the four-year-old boy I nannied for and loved more than anything threw his hands in the air and yelled at the top of his lungs.
"Happy Birthday!"
He ran up to me and nearly toppled me to the ground, and on instinct, my arms reached out to pick him up as he hugged my neck and listed off the things he did to celebrate.
"Daddy said your birthday was yesterday, but we wanted to give you a party just like you did for my birthday! So we went to the store and got you ingredients for your cake, and we made it just for you!"
"You did?" I exclaimed, setting him down and letting him lead me to the kitchen where the cake was sitting out on the table, clearly homemade by two boys who didn't know the first thing about baking or decorating anything. Spencer was standing across the kitchen table with a proud, albeit I-know-it's-not-much-to-look-at smile, but I barely had time to thank him before Benny told me about the process, step-by-step.
As he went on, I nodded and admired the cake, complimenting the purple and green swirls of frosting (his favorite color and mine, he explained), and the trail of assorted candies in the shape of a stegosaurus in the middle (my favorite dinosaur).
"Do you love it, Auntie Y/N?"
I hugged him again with tears in my eyes. I tried not to actually cry, but the tugging at the back of my throat and the blurring of my eyes was extremely difficult to push away. I realized then, as Spencer watched me with his son and looked like he might have been ready to cry himself, that it wasn't worth trying to hide. I was extremely moved and even happier in that moment than I think I'd ever been. I loved that man and his child more than anything I'd ever known.
So, I blinked hard and let the tears silently descend down my cheeks, kissing the side of Benny's head as I told him, "I love it so much. And I love you so much. Thank you."
I looked up at Spencer and said it again. "Thank you."
He nodded, reaching for the star-shaped candle next to the cake. "You're very welcome. Benny, do you want to help Auntie Y/N light the birthday candle?"
The boy squirmed in my arms and I let him down with a laugh as he excitedly reminded us, "That's my favorite part of birthdays!"
"I apologize if you find an eggshell," Spencer warned a few minutes later, slicing the cake after the song had been sung and the candle had been blown out. He slid my plate over and handed me a fork. "Benny and I did our best to fish them all out, but it's... surprisingly harder than it looks."
As Benny nodded in agreement, I looked down at him and took a forkful of cake. "Oh, I don't have anything to worry about. I'm sure you two are excellent eggshell fishermen."
The four-year-old giggled, but his father sighed as if to say, Don't say I didn't warn you...
To no one's surprise but Spencer's, the cake was delicious. I may have played it up for dramatic effect, putting on a whole show as I chewed and considered every bite, playing as if I was unsure and really critiquing the dessert. I set my fork down and looked at Spencer with squinted eyes, then slowly to his son. The suspense was obviously killing him, his small limbs bouncing with anticipation and a smile that suggested he was going to urge the verdict out of me if I didn't announce it very soon.
I decided to spare him the wait.
"Benjamin Reid... That might just be the best cake I've ever had."
"Really? No eggshells?"
I laughed, reaching to give him a high-five as he beamed up at me with sparkling eyes and a wide-open smile. "Not a single one. You should be very proud of yourself. You and your dad, both."
Benny hugged me again, and I glanced over to Spencer, who was slicing another piece of cake and staring at me with that intense look in his eyes, a satisfied half-smile adorning his face. A rush of heat came surging through my bloodstream like a tidal wave, and I had to look away from him or I was afraid I'd collapse on the spot.
Benny didn't know it, but he was saving my life in that very moment, as the three of us ate cake together. I refused to look at his father. I needed literally anything else to keep me from even glancing his way, and my four-year-old best friend's rambling habits were the perfect focus.
He told me more about his process for decorating the cake, and while I was genuinely a little surprised at how much thought there really could have been with the task, with an ever-moving mind like Benny's, it was actually quite clear by the end of it. It charmed me to no end and filled me with pride to know that I'd had enough of an impact on him to trigger this level of detail and consideration. Again, it's not like I'd never had people who cared about me before, but when it came to the Reids, my heart sang a tune I'd never heard, and it was the most beautiful, brightly vivid sound I'd ever had the pleasure to hearâto feel.
I was thinking too much about it, letting the song swallow me whole as tears stung in the back of my eyes and threatened to fall again, when Spencer's phone buzzed on the table. The sound grounded and intrigued me, even more so when he glanced up at me for a moment, right before directing his words to his son.
"Benny, Uncle Will is outside. Is your bag ready?"
He jumped from his seat and nodded. "In my room."
"Okay. Before you grab it, say goodnight to Auntie Y/N."
I felt the toddler's arms hugging my legs, and turned all my attention to him, refusing once again to look at the man whose eyes I could feel burning me alive with something deeply ravenous, begging to be unfettered. I had a feeling, creeping over my senses like a thick blanket of ivy, that I wasn't making it up and letting my desire for him take the wheel, either; Just as the loving, family-friendly song in my heart had beenâbright and vividâthis feeling was just as much the same in its intensity, only echoed with a sound that felt very much like those dark, low hums Spencer always emitted alone in my presence. I felt it all around me and hoped to God that I wasn't about to leave this place feeling like a hopeful, stupid idiot.
"Goodnight, Auntie Y/N. Did you like your birthday?"
"I did, Benny," I answered in earnest, ruffling his hair. "You're very thoughtful and kind. Thank you so much."
"I love you, Auntie Y/N."
I squeezed him tight and made sure he understood every word as truth when I told him, "I love you, too."
ACT IV: When I Grow Up, I Wanna Be Your Girl.
The apartment was quiet when Spencer took Benny outside to meet with Will. I did my best to keep myself busy, cleaning up forks and plates, and wiping down the counter tops while simultaneously ignoring the hammering of my heart against my chest. The organ wouldn't calm down, even as I hummed to myself. It's like those nerves that I had walking through the front door that night never actually went awayâ only subsided for a little while in favor of wholesome celebration.
Part of me wanted to flee, but I knew it wasn't an option. Not really. I had to at least talk to Spencer and thank him for the effort. Perhaps I was good enough of an actress that I could pretend to have been ignorant of his glances all night, or at least that they didn't affect me like he maybe wanted them to.
Catching myself in the act of overthinking again, I grunted and slammed a glass of water, willing the fresh liquid to wash away any insanity. There was no use going through all the possible scenarios in my head, not when there wasn't much time before Spencer returned. No matter what happened, I wasn't going to be prepared for it.
I certainly wasn't prepared for the way my heart practically leapt out of my chest when he returned, softly opening and closing the door. It took everything I had not to turn around and allow him to see how nervous I was. I kept my back turned, hoping and praying I wasn't visibly shaking as heavily as I felt. I was warm all over.
His presence behind me was dense and ever-presentâ almost suffocating. I took my time drying off the plates and forks I'd washed while he was away, hearing him rustle around without a word or acknowledgement of me, and then he finally spoke. I almost dropped a fork.
"Why are you doing my dishes, Birthday Girl?"
"My birthday was yesterday..."
He laughed and came up behind me, a gentle hand on my lower back as the other reached around and took the silverware from my grip. I relented, feeling myself numb at his touch and trying to steady my breathing.
"Yes, but we're celebrating today. In my household at least, that means you're not allowed to do any work."
I turned around to face him as he set the fork down on the counter, his other hand still hovering over my back. It returned to his side, disappearing into the pocket of his pants as I crossed my arms and looked up at him. Thankfully, despite the constant whirring of nerves and desire coursing through my entire being, I was able to hold a conversation without hesitation.
"You're not my dad."
Another amused grin. "No, I'm not. But I am your boss. And as your boss, I'm asking you to take the night off and enjoy yourself."
The way he was staring down at me seemingly punctuated his words with a gentle seduction that made me ache with need. I was getting stronger and bolder by the second, leaning forward just enough to be toe-to-toe with him.
"Okay, then, Boss... Tell me, are there any restrictions to enjoying myself in your household? Because..."
The second I heard that familiar hum rumble from his chest, I knew I was in dangerâ glorious, beautiful danger. His eyes glanced down at my mouth for a second before returning to my own, his body leaning into mine and his free hand reaching out to trap me against the counter.
I tilted my head and brought my fingers up to toy with the tie hanging from his neck. "I am all grown up now, after all..."
"And I suppose you know exactly what you want..."
"Mm-hmm," I drawled, pulling him in closer by the tie. Our lips were barely touching by that point, and I felt my head start to pulse with anticipation as he urged me to go on.
"Well?"
"I want to be yours."
He hummed again, pushing his body to mine and bringing the pocketed hand up to hold the side of my head. "Mmm, Darling, you always have been."
And then he kissed me.
He tasted like sugar, but his intentions were anything but sweet. His mouth devoured mine with a fire that threatened to turn me to ash. Every sense I had was alight, engulfing me in a heat so intense that it was all I was sure to know for the rest of my life. It's all I wanted and all I needed.
I met his intensity with eager hands, exploring the planes of his body as his tongue did wicked things to my own. This time I didn't even need the champagne; I was dizzy on Spencer alone. The fizz boiled me from the inside out and urged my limbs to cling to him like it was my life's purpose. Hell, for all I knew, it was my life's purposeâ to burn for him and let him consume me. To revel in his dancing flame and allow it to become my life force. I wanted it more than I'd ever wanted anything.
And I was sure to let him know that, too, refusing to hold back the string of whines and moans that escaped me every now and again. The hand that had been resting on the counter behind me came down to grip and hike up my thigh, our hips colliding just as beautifully this time as they had the last. The memory caused another wanton sound to tumble from my mouth, and Spencer caught it greedily, pulling back for air long enough to squeeze my thigh and sing me a praise of his own.
"God, I love the sounds you make..."
His lips were on mine again before I could respond, but I didn't even need to. Not verbally, anyway; I guided his hand down the side of my face and over my chest, pushing my body into him and feeling his fingers tighten. His kisses grew hungrier, and suddenly I was starving.
I was finally able to break away from his mouth in favor of tasting the skin and stubble along his jaw. Then, I buried my face in his neck and reached for his belt, praying he wouldn't jump away like last time.
Thankfully, he didn't. His grip on both my breast and my thigh tightened again, but he didn't pull away from me. His breath didn't even hitch.
I took that as a good sign and slowly undid his belt. The sound alone was enough to send a jolt of excitement between my thighs, though the visions dancing behind my eyelids of what I planned to do in just a few moments helped my pleasure immensely. I dragged my tongue softly along Spencer's neck before freeing the belt and sinking to the ground alongside it. His hands fell away from my body and chose to root in my hair instead. The gentle tugging at my scalp admittedly made me stumble, but not out of discomfort; I was actually quite surprised at how much I liked the feeling.
Spencer noticed, humming again with amusement as I went back to tugging down his pants. Still, he said nothing, instead watching me intently as I continued my journey.
I didn't hide the desire I felt as I palmed the length of him through his underwear. In fact, I couldn't decide if I wanted to keep my sight leveled or to angle it up at him, because it was a damn good sight either way; The sensual nature of my fingers gently caressing him, knowing what was resting beyond that thin layer of fabric and imagining how it probably felt to him, or the thick and domineering air between his face and mine, his gaze committing every movement I made to wicked memory...
With a sigh, I opted to lean forward, ignoring the sharp bruising on my knees and putting all my focus into the task at large.
Spencer seemed to tell I was thinking too much, gently massaging my scalp and cooing, "Have you ever done this before?"
Yes, but... "Not with anyone I've actually wanted this badly..."
"Mmm, that does make a difference..." he observed. "Whatever it is that you need to be comfortable, Y/Nâ tell me. Okay? Promise me you won't hurt yourself in any way just to please me."
A surge of heat exploded through me at the intensity of it all. He was sincere, and by the sound of things, sympathetic to my overthinking. It was another show of just how much I wanted him to guide me, to hold me in his comforting, knowing embrace and show me exactly how life should be lived. Every life experience there was to know, I wanted to know it with him.
"I promise," I told him firmly, not breaking eye contact as I tugged at the cotton between us.
His eyes struggled to stay open when I finally gripped his cock, feeling the weight of it in my hand and bringing it to my mouth. I glanced down then, taking in every ridge as it disappeared slowly down the length of my tongue. I reveled in the taste, in the fullness I felt the deeper it went, and once it hit the back of my throat and caused me to choke and pull back, I angled my eyes back up at his face to find the most heavenly sight I'd ever seen.
Spencer watched me all the time. I was no stranger to his intense gazes. But when I looked up at him that time, his mouth open and eyes so deeply darkened with need that they could have drowned me, I truly thought I might have died and entered the afterlife. Perhaps that was dramatic, but there was no other possible way for me to describe the feeling that coursed through me in that moment. Suddenly I was chasing it, longing to be in that state of euphoria forever, and my mouth eagerly went to work in pursuit of it.
I took my time, exploring the ways he could fit in my mouth and the ways my tongue could cover the length of him. I went in search of any pleasure point I could find, occasionally looking up to gauge his reaction and finding nothing but those beautiful, salacious pools of liquid gold.
Eventually, I was brave enough to take him to the back of the throat again, holding him there and seeing how long it would take before I felt the air leave my lungs. I repeated the process a few times, stroking him with my hand in between gasps of air and shivering at the way he tugged my hair. My vision was starting to blur, but I persisted, aching to know what he tasted like as he came undone.
Unfortunately, it wasn't in the cards for me to find out that night.
I whined as he held my head away from him, praying he wasn't backing out.
"Stand up, please," he asked softly. It sounded like he'd been breathless, and maybe he had. The thought that I had that effect on him calmed my nerves and made me dizzy as I stood, and his hands cradled my head once again.
"You are so good," he whispered, kissing me deeply. I melted into him, only for him to pull back and continue his praises. "So beautiful..." Another toe-curling kiss, and then, "So perfect."
My eyes fluttered shut as his mouth moved over my jaw and to my pulse-point. "My good, sweet girl," he murmured, and the words caused me to clench around nothing.
"Please."
The word fell out of me with a whimper and at its urgency, Spencer's mouth attacked my neck with a gentle, hungry bite that sent a shiver down my spine.
"Follow me."
And I did. I always would.
As much as I would have loved the opportunity to look around his bedroom and make banter about what I discovered on any normal day, my brain was so overwhelmed and numb with desire that the thought hadn't even crossed my mind.
Not that I would have had the time to think about it anyway; He was on me the moment my legs touched the edge of the bed, devouring my mouth once more and pulling me into his atmosphere with fervor. Willing myself to get even closer to him, I brought my fingers up to thread through his hair and was rewarded with another gentle tug of my own.
Suddenly I was extremely hot, squirmy and anxious to break free from the confines of clothing, and Spencer could tell.
He broke apart with a laugh, bringing a hand down to trace the collar of my shirt. "Have you no patience?"
"You're the one sucking my face like it's the end of the fucking world," I breathed when he shifted the collar and exposed more of my skin to the air, earning me another low grumble of a laugh.
"You're not complaining are you?"
"God, no."
"Mmm, good," he hummed into my cheek, reaching down and tugging my shirt over my head. The fabric caught on his nose for a second, bringing a laugh to the surface of my tongue before he swallowed it with another kiss and tossed the shirt to the ground.
Warm, nimble fingers spanned my bare stomach and thoroughly explored the surface area of me, up and up until they slipped under the backside of my bra.
"Is this okay?"
I pushed myself into him and nipped at his bottom lip. "Yes, Doctor."
Goosebumps littered my arms as he deftly unhooked the bra and slid it off my body, and I barely had time to take a breath before he was kissing me again, pawing at my chest and slipping me his eager tongue. My senses were on overload, that hot pang of need pulsating between my legs as I then fell backwards, letting him lay me down and settle himself between them. His kisses traveled lower, tongue darting out to flick over my peaked nipple, and I involuntarily arched up into him.
No one had ever paid this much careful attention to my body beforeâIt was always a quick pleasantry to get out of the way before the main course. But the way Spencer held and touched and tasted me felt like a crash course in intimacy. He was still hungry for me, obviously, but he made it feel like it wasn't just about the destination. He savored each and every second of the moment in all its pent-up, beautiful glory.
Which is why, when he finally slipped a hand down the front of my pants, he seemed delighted to find that I was practically soaked through my panties already.
His middle finger pressed firmly at my clothed heat, and I sighed into his mouth.
"Look at what I've done to you... Poor thing. You're just aching to be filled, aren't you?"
My head had no choice but to arch backwards as I moaned into the open air at his words, my legs clamping around his hand. "God, Spencer, please..."
"So I'm not wrong, then?" he mused, teasing me some more and just barely pushing the fabric aside. I squirmed and lifted my hips, trying to guide him in the right place, but he pulled away from me then, leaving me cold.
Only a second later did the heat return; Spencer stood at the foot of the bed and gently helped me scoot to the edge. He removed the rest of my clothes and stared down at my bare figure as he unbuttoned his shirt, debauchery settling in his eyes as they raked over me. With careful consideration, once his shirt was on the floor with the rest of my clothes, he came down and caressed my inner thigh, slowly spreading my legs apart.
"You're so wet and needy, I'm willing to bet you don't even need me to prep you..."
All it took was one lithe finger to prove his theory correct. It slid into me with ease, and I whined out at the contact. One finger swiftly became two, and after a few slow pumps with no resistance, he seemed satisfied. "Mmm, that's what I thought... You've been ready for me for a long time, haven't you?"
"Uh-huh," was all I could manage under the circumstances. Every word and every touch was rendering me incapable of anything more complex.
He removed his fingers from me then, and leaned down to nudge my nose with his own. "How are you feeling?" he asked me in a whisper, fluttering a gentle kiss over my lips as his cock barely teased my entrance. It was such a simple question, but it only deepened the desire I felt for himâ It was gentle and attentive and intimate...
"Never better," I responded earnestly.
"Yeah?" he cooed. He pushed into me slowly then, and I gasped at the pressure. "Are you ready to take it?"
"Uh-huh," I stuttered once more, crying out silently when he finally bottomed out and ground his hips in a slow circle against my own.
"Tell me what you want, little girl," he begged sweetly against my lips. "Please, I need to hear you say it."
I gripped his shoulders and pulled back a little to hold his gaze, almost gasping out again at the way his hips pinned me down. It was difficult to form the perfect sentence, but I figured I didn't really need to say much at allâ only the whimper-y, pathetic truth, which was, "I want you so bad..."
"As you wish."
The words barely left his lips before he began to move, hooking my legs around his forearms and spreading me apart further. He fucked me deeply, and with a steady pace that knocked the wind from my lungs and already had me seeing stars. That had never happened before.
Spencer could tell, a grin forming on his face as he freed one of his hands and softly traced my jaw. "Better than you thought?"
Absolutely. But there was something about that cocky grin on his face and the lilt in his voice that made me want to be difficult. I struggled to talk through heavy breathing, but I managed to choke out, "Don't... flatter yourself."
I don't quite know what I expected, but it was a bit of a shock to me when he hooked his thumb into my mouth and pressed down gently on my tongue, quickening his pace inside me and making me gasp out again.
"Aw... Are you not enjoying yourself?" he pouted without a single hint of sincerity; He knew I was.
I cried out and involuntarily closed my mouth around his thumb, my insides burning alive at all the sensations coursing through me. My cunt clenched around him, and he cried out himself, laughing softly as he did so. "That's what I thought..."
I wanted to watch him the way he watched me, to study his features and his movements and take it all in with reverence, but he was too fucking good at this. He was so skilled in the art of rendering me senseless, all I could do was lay there and take it. He gave himself to me in the most intimate, soul-crushing way, and I wanted to bask in it forever.
His other hand snaked along the inside of my thigh and held me open for him as he looked down, watching himself fuck me. I barely caught glimpses of his wandering gaze, wondering how he could be so focused when it was taking everything I had to stay cognizant. I blamed it on my lack of experience with good sex, and silently vowed to myself that one day I would return the favor.
Until then, I would lay at Spencer's mercy and take pleasure in the simple fact that he was willing to give me thisâ to give me a piece of himself that would no doubt ruin any other partner. He was setting the standard and exceeding it simultaneously. He was kind and caring and considerate. He was thorough and thoughtful.
And he was making me come. Hard.
The orgasm hit me out of nowhere, my body stuttering in quick, pulsing flashes of pleasure that got stronger and stronger each second. Spencer fucked me through it with ease, never missing a beat. His thumb slid out from my mouth and down my chin, allowing me to cry out for him all I wanted, which, seemingly was his goal.
"That's my good girl," he breathed, his voice tight. Perhaps he wasn't as put together as I thought. "Let it all out for me... Please..."
Please... God, that word sounded so good falling from his lips. It echoed in my mind as I gave him what he wanted, though not from choice. It was like his movements and his words were designed specifically to draw the sounds from my body. I would have given them to him anyway, but I didn't have to try, and that was the magic of it all. He knew exactly what would keep me mewling through the most intense pleasure of my life, and I was more than happy to allow him the pleasantry.
His orgasm came at the tail-end of mine, and though I was steadily growing tired at the exertion, I found the strength to clench around him again, recalling how he'd reacted before. I reached for his hand and allowed him to lace our fingers together as he came with a loud shuddering sigh.
Finally, I was able to focus, another chill running its course through my nervous system as Spencer pulsated inside me. His movements faltered as he spilled over, filling me so deep that I had no choice but to gasp again. My name sounded heavenly on his tongue as it danced in the air behind curses and sighs, and suddenly I understood why he enjoyed hearing my sounds so much. The warmth that bloomed in my chest as I watched and felt and heard him come undone above me delivered me to the most prideful of feelings.
I watched as his face relaxed, felt as his body eased and fell away from mine, and before I had time to even think of what to say, he was moving, kneeling at the end of the bed and spreading my legs again.
Oh, my God...
I couldn't even tell if I said the expression out loud, but I certainly felt its gravity in my bones, low and reverberating as Spencer inspected his work.
His fingers barely caught what had leaked out, and then his tongue followed suit, licking a gentle hot stripe up the seam of me. My fingers clutched at the comforter underneath me, searching for any sign of stability as my senses started to lose control once more.
"Darling," he praised, kissing the inside of my thigh, "you took me so well..."
I was halfway through telling him, "Thank you," when he started licking at my clit, making me stutter. He took his time, tasting me thoroughly while filling me with his fingers. Between drowning in the residual pleasure of my previous orgasm and also in the sounds he was making below me, it wasn't long before another one approached. It was sharp and quick, making my back arch up off the mattress as Spencer sucked my clit into oblivion.
Rather than incoherent cries of pleasure, the only thing that dared to leave my mouth at the sensation was a very loud, very appropriate, "Fuck!" to the evening air.
The curse tumbled out over and over again as the orgasm rocked through me, and he pulled himself away from me at the end of it with a shit-eating grin. "Such a dirty mouth..."
It took me a few seconds to catch my breath, shivering as he climbed back up on the bed and laid beside me. "You're one to talk, Doctor."
"I guess I'm a poor influence. Sorry."
It was mostly a joke, but I could tell that he believed there was some truth to his words. I did my best to reassure him, not only because he was my boss and I needed to reinstate the idea that we both made the decision to sleep together, not just him, but also because I secretly hoped he wouldn't regret the decision at allâ regret me. Selfishly, I wanted to know if he'd consider keeping me around as more than just a nanny. I wanted to know if there was even a slight chance that this wouldn't end in total emotional disaster.
"You have nothing to be sorry for... Nothing..."
Spencer studied me for a moment, something settling in his eyes that I couldn't quite place, but it felt... warm. It was a different warmth than the searing heat that his gazes had radiated before. Perhaps it was wishful, foolish thinking, but I almost imagined it feeling akin to the realization that you were falling in loveâ the type of warmth that terrified yet excited you all the same, that triggered your nerves and also gave you hope.
It reminded me of that dangerous, beautiful hope that lingered in his smile every time he'd come home from a long day at work to see me and Benny safe and sound in the comfort of his home.
His hand gently brushed mine, I laced our fingers together, and that's when he finally responded.
"Neither do you, you know... I meant what I said. Every word." His fingers tightened in mine, and I felt myself become breathless again. "You're perfect. And I'm lucky to have you."
"You're just saying that because it's my birthday," I joked, trying to keep myself from crying in front of him. I didn't know why that was so important to me, especially considering just a few hours ago I'd decided not to hide the truth from him, no matter how emotional and teary of a truth it was.
Spencer pressed his forehead to mine, sighing my name through a smile. "You are... the best thing that has happened to me since Benny. I was afraid to admit it at the start, but... You're so good to him, and so good to me... I genuinely don't ever want to know what life would be like without you."
I couldn't help it then. My vision was suddenly obscured by tears, and I was blinking them away, letting him capture my lips in a tender kiss that rivaled any other.
I prayed in that very moment that there would be more like them in the future.
CODA: All My Rings Will Be Made of Gold.
Turns out, there had been plenty more, and then some.
It's hard to choose a favorite, though obviously I'm quite biased when it comes to my boys. So, I suppose it's easy for me to recall the night I got engaged as my favorite.
I wasn't nannying for Benny anymore; He was in school during the day (Kindergarten! I cried dropping him off on his first day, and Spencer had to console me with kisses and ice cream), and by that point I'd been moved into the apartment for almost a year.
I was out grocery shopping, and when I came home, there were flowers all over the floor, bright colors scattered in an obvious trail that led to the bedrooms. I didn't quite understand what was happening, but my heart still hammered in my chest, unable to shake that feeling of warmth and hope.
"Boys? What are you up to?" I called, dropping the bags off in the kitchen and following the flowers.
They were both kneeling on the floor of Benny's bedroom, Spencer with an open ring box in his hand, and Benny with a piece of paper in his.
"Will you be my mom?"
Really, how could I have said no? There isn't a world in which I ever would have, but even still. Benny was unable to sit still, waiting for me to answer him, and I remembered the night they presented me with that first birthday cake of many for years to come. He was the same way then, happier than ever to surprise me, and meanwhile all I wanted to do was burst into tears over how much love I was feeling.
Unlike that night, however, I was simply unable to tease him with the anticipation of an answer. I couldn't even pretend to consider it, not for a moment. It was the easiest answer I'd ever given. To this day, it still is.
Benny ran up and hugged me the tightest he ever had before, and Spencer got up from the ground to meet us, slipping a thin gold band on my finger as I repeated the word to him through the tenderest of kisses.
"Yes."
THE END.
#spencer reid x reader#criminal minds fanfiction#spencer reid#spencer reid smut#criminal minds#spencer reid fanfiction#spencer reid x reader smut#mercy after hours
2K notes
·
View notes
Text
Homecoming
⧠jing yuan x gn!reader
⧠synopsis: the general of luofu awaits your return home into his arms
⧠contents: established relationship, fluff, jing yuan's inner monologue about his dear lover
⧠a/n: kicks down door, GUESS WHOSE BACK! I HOPE. this was word vomit so if there's anything wrong or amiss, no there isn't. I wanted to write a lil fluff before going back to my self indulgent fic (and writing for phainon too) im sorry wife i left you alone for MONTHS!! anyway i hope you all just like this fluffy piece where an overthinking jing yuan eagerly awaits your return home <3 this is just mostly jing yuan monologue cause the reader doesn't appear before the end but <3 i hope you enjoy it nonetheless! thank you all for your patience !! hopefully i'll update a bit more from now!
If you were to tap a Xianzhou citizen on the shoulder and ask for their opinion on the dozing general of the Luofu, they would describe him as a wise and benevolent general, a bit too easy-going for his position, a cat lover and an advocate that everyone should have 3 hot meals each day.
They would never describe the general of the Luofu as someone who would openly show his emotions.
And yet, on a seemingly normal sunny afternoon on the Luofu, tucked into a corner of Cloudford in what should be a normal port for any ship carrying cargo from other worlds to dock for the day - stands the general of the Xianzhou Luofu, alone.
Itâs a weird sight, the general has nothing to do with cargo transportation - let alone overseeing any new ships coming to dock upon the Luofu for the day unless it was a fellow general or the marshal themselves.
Yet here he was, often times leaning a bit too close to the edge of the dock to scavenge any new ships coming to land in this specific area thatâs unoccupied, his free hand thatâs not propping his whole body on the railing is busy fiddling around with his phone - he occasionally unlocks it to re-read the message thatâs been left open ever since this morning, scrounging for anything new - to see if youâve edited the message to another location.
But itâs still the same, even after the 7th time heâs read the message.
âThereâs a bit more cargo than we expected from the marshal, so instead of landing at the usual dock at Starskiff Haven, weâre going to dock at the northernmost dock in Cloudford. We should arrive before the delegations from Zhuming and Yaoqing, but remember to greet them if they come here before me!â
Jing Yuan let out a long sigh, stuffing his phone back into his pocket before looking around the dock. Itâs hardly an appropiate place to greet you back, surrounded by boxes upon boxes of either different furniture or weapons for the Cloud Knights - maybe even some souvenirs from the various traders that have settled in Luofu.
You should be greeted by the vast open sky that youâve loved to see in Luofu each morning when you wake up by his side, watch the various starskiffs soar in the sky while the wind graces you with the various leaves adorned throughout the Luofu - all while glancing back at him with the same gentle smile youâve greeted him for the past hundred years.
The ever so aloof general lets out a sigh, bringing a hand up to run through his more than usual messy bangs to keep his mind away from the thoughts of you, âYou wouldâve nagged me for letting my hair become even more unruly if you saw me nowâŠâ
It did not work at all.
Maybe he can convince Qingzu to arrange a specific port in Cloudford just for you, but that would only make both you and her regard him with disappointment at where he puts the resources of Luofu at - although he can see the glint of affection that crosses your eyes whenever he jokingly suggests building your entire private port so that youâre not mobbed by the citizens each time you come back from your own delegations.
Jing Yuan takes one more glance towards the phone he had just pocketed, how can that itâs only been 2 mere minutes after he last checked? He swears it mustâve been a system hour at least since heâs arrived at the dock.
Maybe something had happened, youâre usually on time after all. Is the traffic to enter Luofu bigger than the usual? Granted the Wardance was just announced and a lot of people from all over have come to finally step foot into Luofu again after the stellaron incident. But you usually predicted this and would arrive even earlier to be on time. Maybe he should contact Yukong and see if thereâs any-
His racing mind comes to a screeching halt when he hears the familiar roar of the starskiff engine turn to a mere hum near him - the sound much closer than the starskiffs flying above him.
For some reason, he did not dare look up - Of course the northernmost dock wasnât just meant for your ship to land, numerous others had already landed here before. Aeons above, he had greeted another cargo ship who were pleasantly surprised to see his appearance when he had first entered the area after all.
Jing Yuan could feel his palms sweat the tiniest bit, and suddenly he was actuely aware that he kept bouncing back and forth on his heels - something he even thought to himself was unknown behaviour from him. He had after all, never been this giddy or nervous to meet someone at all.
But then again, ever since youâve arrived in his life - heâs shown sides of himself he didnât know was there at all.
Oh dear, Iâve sure been spoiled by them.
Before he can derail even more into his thoughts, his downcast gaze is suddenly locked with your own curious ones, a raised eyebrow and lips jutting out a tiny bit in concern.
And suddenly, Jing Yuan feels his entire body relax, his tense shoulders finally slack and he exals deeply - which in turn makes you even more confused. âJing Yuan? What are you even doing out- woah!â
Youâre not able to even finish your question before your lover lifts you up with seemingly no effort, a gleeful smile paints his lips and his eyes crinkle the tiniest bit at the corners. The sudden upwards movement makes you yelp a tiny bit, immediately putting your hands on his shoulders in reflex while a light dust of red covers your cheek at the display of affection, âJing-!â
But you can already tell heâs not listening to you at all, gently setting you down on the ground again before his arms wrap around your lower waist, fingers pressing against your lower back to press your body further into his own - completey ignoring the snickering Cloud Knights behind the two of you who have become used to the general display of affection towards you.
â⊠How was your trip, dear?â he finally asks, resting his forehead against yours for a brief second to let you breathe. You let out a sigh in return, raising your arm to place a hand on his cheek - Jing Yuan immediately leaning against it before turning his head to peck your palm, âYou already know how itâs been, no? Iâve sent you updates each morning and night after all.â
Jing Yuan merely hums, gliding his lips down towards your wrists before he leans his body closer to your own to nuzzle his face into your neck, inhaling softly, âDear, you know I appreciate hearing about your day rather than reading a bunch of text.â
The little laugh you let out makes Jing Yuan let out a little giggle himself, but you feel his hold tighten around you when you try to squirm away from him, âNow, now - I havenât seen you for months now, beloved. Donât try to run away now.â
âJing Yuan if you havenât noticed we are still in public-â you try to reason, but your lover doesnât listen, reduced to a mere overgrown cat in your presence as he tries to get even closer to your own body - thereâs barely any room between your for air to even pass between the two of you.
You raise an eyebrow in confusion, gripping the arms around your waist to at least make him lessen the grip he has on you, "Jing Yuan, at least let me-"
âI missed you,â he finally whispers silently, and all your previous squirming comes to a halt when you feel the slight tremble in his voice. And itâs only when you register that tremble do you realize that his hands that are splayed by your neck to keep you in place are shaking ever so slightly, â⊠More than I thought I would.â he confesses, to your ears only.
You let out a light huff, finally wrapping your arms around his shoulders and threading your hand into his hair so you can tuck his face further into your neck, leaning your cheek against his hair, âIâm home, Jing Yuan.â you confirm, turning your head to peck the top of his head once.
Like he understood your request immediately, Jing Yuan leans back to face you once again, a slight guilty look on his features for subjecting you to a situation he knows you deem a bit uncomfortable. But the smile you give him relieves him of his troubling thoughts. You shake your head silently, a quiet answer to his equally silent apology before you cradle both his cheeks in your hands to keep him in place before slotting your lips over his own. He lets out a small sigh into your mouth, pressing his lips firmly against your own before parting slightly, the gentle, easy-going smile you're used to seeing back on his lips. âWelcome home, my dear.â
#honkai star rail x reader#hsr x reader#honkai star rail x you#honkai star rail imagines#hsr x you#star rail x reader#jing yuan x reader#jing yuan x you#x reader#reader insert
730 notes
·
View notes
Text
Love and War (m)
warnings: vĂšry lĂłng, hĂghly 18+ thĂšmĂšs, ĂšxplĂŻcĂŻt smĂŒt/sĂšx, ĂșnprĂłtĂšctĂšd sĂšx, chÚåtĂng, gĂłrĂš, mĂșrdĂšr, prĂšgnĂĄncy, lĂŽnlĂness, ĂšxplĂŻcĂŻt vĂölĂšncĂš, blóód, yĂĄndĂšrĂš chĂĄrĂ ctĂšs, bördĂšrlĂnĂš cĂłffÚÚ Ă ddĂŻctïön, dĂ rk jĂŒngkóók.
pairing: yandere police officer jungkook x fem!Barista reader
genre: strictly 18+ killer fic, rated M, Gore, thriller and erotica
word count: 6,000
note. My fingers have been hurting so much these days because Iâve been dedicating a lot of time to writing this. I started this draft on October 14 and now I have finally finished it today and I wanted to publish this because I have worked hard on this so much Iâve done a lot of extensive research so please guys like it and re-blog it. This is worth a read I promise please please send feedback and let me know what you think because I really need it.
âąâąâą
This case in particular is brutal.
As Jungkook sits in his office space, heâs looking at the latest crime scene pictures. And they are brutal, the manâs throat is literally spilling out, tongue cut off.
Thereâs so much blood.
Seodaemun-gu is particularly cold, and heâs been working overtime, as an inspector heâs been pretty busy thanks to a psychotic serial killer whoâs been targeting a lot of men lately
This is the 17th victim.
Jungkooks been trying to piece the puzzle together, he picks up the warm cup of coffee and gulps down another sip, his furrows his eyebrows, he knows that itâs just one person doing all of these killings.
The pattern of killing is too similar, the gore, the marks, the method.
There is a familiar drug found in every single one of the victims bodies.
âFuck.â He curses as he drops the pictures on the table, he needs to catch the killer before itâs too late, it is too late anyways.
October isnât so kind this year, it is harshly cold. And this case has his whole attention. âIâll catch you, psycho.â He mutters under his breath.
He will catch the psycho before Halloween.
Jungkooks grip on his cup tightens. He will make this killer pay. Just as heâs staring at the pictures again, his phone rings.
He sighs, averting his gaze to his phone as he picks it up, a small smile playing on his face. âHey baby!!!â He grins speaking into the phone.
He loves his girlfriend so much. Sheâs the only thing that is making him happy these days.
âHey koo!â as she greets him back, he cannot stop smiling, âahh so are we still on for tonight?â He asks slyly, she makes him so happy.
There is a silence for a few seconds, but he waits patiently for her response, Jungkook holds the phone up his ear, waiting.
âOh⊠sorry baby but no, Iâm kinda busy tonight. You know this assignment is keeping me up all night. I canât Iâm so sorry.â
His smile falters.
âU-Uh..â
This is the third time.
âUmm itâs okay.â he replies, playing it cool but honestly, heâs a little upset because sheâs been doing everything but spending time with him and heâs the one trying to solve a fucking murder case.
âDonât be upset koo⊠I swear Iâll make it up to you.â He sighs. âItâs okay baby. IâŠunderstand.â Jungkook knows thereâs no point in arguing.
He just misses her.
After talking to her for a few minutes, he finally ends the call. Itâs time he refocuses on the case.
What he should be focusing on right now is catching the killer
And not the fact that his girlfriend is literally ignoring him for the past days, heâs barely seen her face this month, itâs bothering him, but he cannot afford to be distracted right now.
There cannot be an 18th victim.
He wonât let it happen.
âąâąâą
Itâs lonely
But at least now he gets to go to his favorite coffee shop and drink, coffee in peace while staring out at the view, honestly speaking the view isnât that special but jungkook likes to have some free time to himself just so he can reconnect with the world.
he enters the coffee shop, the bells above jingle as the door opens, itâs not too crowded today which is a good thing because the less the crowd the more he can focus and think.
Only a handful of people who are drinking and waiting for their orders as he approaches his table. Jungkook sits down on it, taking the chair out.
He scans the area. He likes how peaceful it is here because his job is not peaceful or neither cute, he has just come back from seeing a gruesome murder scene and this is exactly the detox He needs right now.
âHey!!! Mr Jeon?â his snap of his thoughts when the barista calls out his name, he turns to look ahead, and smiles seeing the familiar face.
âHey Ms yn! Howâs it going? I think Iâm just gonna have the regular.â He tells, looking at you, and you nod, youâre a sweet girl.
Youâve been serving him coffee for the past year almost, âwell got it! Maybe I should get you some brownie too; of course courtesy of me.â You laugh, âlooks like you really could use some sweetness in your life since you work so hardâ
He laughs a little, shaking his head. âyeah youâre right. Itâs been quite bitter these days.â He mutters to himself almost.
You walk away. impatiently, he waits for his coffee.. He might have an addiction, but itâs OK. Caffeine is necessary when youâre a police officer.
Sometime later you come back with his order. And he looks at you, thanking you.. âthank you Ms yn. Appreciate you for putting up with me.â he jokes, you give him a kind smile, âoh Mr Jeon how about you Just call me yn?â You insist and he almost blushes.
âAhhh sure sure I will but only if you call me by my first name too.â He waves his hand, picking up his coffee to take a sip, and the smell of the brownie just fills his nostrils and he hums in delight
âThe brownie smells so good and this coffee is awesome. Thank you so much.â
You wink in return, which has his cheeks actually burning up
Youâre bold and youâre confident and that he appreciates about you because maybe you like him a little and you donât really make an effort to hide the fact
âOkay.. Iâll go now have funâ he watches as you go away.
And he canât help but feel his heart flutter in his chest.
âąâąâą
A few days later, his same routine just goes on and on, but there is not a single point that he has been able to catch, which could help him actually lead to the killer
And his days are only getting worse. Thereâs an emptiness that heâs starting to feel. Honestly, he feels like a failure.
A failure of a boyfriend and a failure of an inspector.
Jungkook steps into his dimly lit apartment, shrugging off his rain-soaked jacket. The warmth of the place feels hollow, as if reflecting the emptiness creeping into his chest. He slumps onto the couch, running his hands through his damp hair. His mind is a mess, caught between the horrifying images of the latest crime scene, Minaâs growing distance, and the subtle comfort he finds in your quiet presence at the cafĂ©.
He pulls out his phone and stares at Minaâs name in his contacts. Something in him snaps, and before he can overthink it, he presses âCall.â
It rings longer than it should.
âHello?â Her voice is clipped, impatient.
âMina. Can you come over?â he asks out of desperation because he so lonely, and he needs to feel her love and her warmth.
âItâs late, Jungkook. Iâm busy.â he understands it. Sheâs been busy, but itâs been so long since heâs been with her physically and she keeps on being distant.
Heâs starting to break, his face falls, and his voice hardens at her sudden coldness.
âBusy with what?â he demands, the sharpness in his voice surprising even himself. he gripped the phone tighter and waits for her response with a thumping heartbeat.
Thereâs a pause, long enough for unease to settle in his gut. âWork,â she finally says, but the word feels rehearsed, flat.
âBullshit.â He stands, pacing the small living room. âYouâre lying to me.â he knows that sheâs lying. Does she really think that heâs that stupid?
âExcuse me?â Her tone hardens, defensive.
âYouâve been distant for weeks,â he says, his voice rising. âThe late nights, the dodged questions, the way you look at me like Iâm a stranger. If thereâs something youâre hiding, Mina, I deserve to know.â
She exhales sharply, a sound halfway between frustration and guilt. âYouâre paranoid, Jungkook. Youâre always at work, always chasing some killer. Maybe the problem isnât meâitâs you.â
âThatâs not an answer,â he snaps. âYou think I donât notice the way youâre pulling away? The phone calls you donât take around me? If you donât want to be with me, just say it.â
Her silence cuts deeper than any words could.
âYouâre impossible,â she finally says, her voice trembling with suppressed anger. âYou think everything revolves around you and your job, but you donât even see whatâs right in front of you. Maybe I have been distant, Jungkook, but can you blame me? Youâre so wrapped up in your case that thereâs no room for anythingâor anyoneâelse.â
He clenches his fists, his nails digging into his palms. âYouâre deflecting. Just tell me the truth, Mina. Are you seeing someone else?â
Her sharp intake of breath tells him everything he needs to know.
âMina,â he growls, his voice low and dangerous.
âIâm not doing this,â she says, and the line goes dead.
Jungkook stares at his phone, his breath coming in ragged bursts. The quiet of the apartment feels suffocating, pressing in on him from all sides. He throws his phone onto the couch and grabs his keys, his mind a whirlwind of anger, betrayal, and something he canât quite name.
But for a fact, he knows that heâs lost Mina forever. And the realization dawns on him as he stares at his phone screen. Heâs alone once again like he has been for a month.
But maybe this time, forever
And it doesnât take him long to break down in his apartment. Heâs so alone and maybe he will be forever. Why can nobody ever love him?
Is he not deserving of love?
âąâąâą
The coffee shop is dark except for the faint glow of a single lamp by the counter. Youâre wiping down the tables, your movements unhurried, as if you have all the time in the world. The sight of youâcalm, groundedâmakes something in Jungkook loosen, just slightly.
You look up as he enters, the chime of the bell breaking the silence.
âJungkook?â you say, surprised. âItâs late. What are you doing here?â
He doesnât answer immediately, just walks over to the counter and leans against it. âI needed to get out of my head.â
You study him, noting the tension in his jaw, the shadows under his eyes. âRough day?â
He laughs bitterly. âYou could say that.â
The way you look at him, makes his heart flutter in an abnormal way, maybe itâs the loneliness that heâs making behave like this but youâre gaze actually drives him crazy
You hesitate for a moment before stepping around the counter, standing a little closer to him. âWant to talk about it?â
âNo,â he says quickly, then softens. âI just⊠I donât know. Everything feels like itâs falling apart.â
You nod, not pushing him for details. Instead, you reach for the bottle of whiskey you keep hidden behind the counter for nights like this. You pour him a glass and slide it across the table.
âHere,â you say. âOn the house.â
He takes a sip, the burn in his throat a welcome distraction from the turmoil in his mind. âThanks.â
You sit down beside him, the two of you falling into a comfortable silence. But you can feel his eyes on you, heavy and searching.
âYouâre always here,â he says suddenly, his voice soft.
âSomeone has to be,â you reply, your lips quirking into a small smile.
âYou know Y/N? Iâm so fucking alone. My girlfriend is probably cheating on me. She doesnât care about meâŠ. No one cares about me.â His voice breaks on the last sentence.
You look at him with pity and something deeper swimming in your gaze, but he doesnât know how to pinpoint it, you urge him to continue so he does.
He chuckles, but itâs humorless. âItâs more than that. You donât know what it means to me, Y/N. Just⊠knowing thereâs someone who gives a damn.â
Your heart skips a beat, but you play it cool. âWell, you look like you could use someone in your corner.â
He turns to you then, his gaze intense, and for a moment, neither of you speaks. The air between you feels charged, electric
âWhy do you care so much?â he asks, his voice barely above a whisper.
You hesitate, your pulse racing. âMaybe I just like seeing you smile.â
Youâre the first person who has ever said that to him, and in that moment, he realizes that your silence is the only silence that doesnât feel suffocating.
You look at him with such a deep emotion that it makes him go crazy, what are you doing to him? Why do you care about him so much?
Youâve been there for him since day one. Youâre so comforting so kind and so nonjudgmental.
You listen to him rant, Complain, but you donât say anything every time.
The more he looks at you, the more his heart keeps on thumping, inside his chest and alcohol just rushes through his body, and suddenly his pants feel so achingly tight.
The silence between you both is charged with tension, a tension that makes shivers go down his spine, youâre looking at him in a way that has him hallucinating that you want to lure him in.
He just wants to drown in your embrace, feel you in a way that no one has ever, he just wants to bury himself to hilt inside of you so maybe he can feel wanted again, and maybe he will feel safe for once.
His breath hitches, and before either of you can think better of it, his lips crash into yours.
âąâąâą
The back room of the cafĂ© becomes a blur of heat and desperation as you both stumble in while heâs busy, shoving his tongue on your throat. Itâs not tenderâitâs raw, messy, driven by an ache neither of you can name. He breaks the kiss after it feels like hours, and he dips his head low and you feel his hot wet lips on your neck, His hands are rough against your skin, his lips leaving trails of bruises along your neck.
âJungkook,â you whisper, your voice breaking as his hands grip your hips. It feels so fucking good. The desperation and the need is driving you insane.
You can feel his muscular body, heâs so perfect. You have dreamed of this moment for the longest time. But you never really thought that it would come true.
But as he kisses your neck, his lips burn on your skin. And that makes you realize that this is your reality. You are finally getting to live your dream.
You moan out his name again breathlessly gripping on his shoulders so tightly as he attacks your neck, whispers of his name leave your mouth, youâre getting breathless, just by him kissing your skin.
Thatâs how much you want him.
He doesnât respond with words, only pulls you closer, his movements frantic. Itâs as though heâs trying to drown in you, to forget everything outside of this moment.
His scent is so exotic, heâs always smelled so good whenever heâs visited the cafĂ©, his son is so stronger it surrounds the whole cafĂ© and right now youâre so close to him. Itâs getting you high.
You know that heâs drunk, heâs so fucking drunk and vulnerable, but you cannot bring yourself to stop him, especially not when he pushes your panties down, his lips hot on your collarbones.
How can you bring yourself to stop him when heâs suddenly licking his fingers, as he takes them out you, you stare at him, theyâre glistening with his Saliva.
Heâs so beautiful and so handsome, and the most sexiest man youâve ever seen.
You can only encourage him, and you do that, when he finally starts to push his two digits inside of you, your hips buck up.
Youâre so fucking wet itâs embarrassing.
He scissors them inside of you, curling them inside your gummy walls, hitting that spot that has you seeing stars, immediately and heâs barely even started
âAGGHâŠâ you moan out loudly, He groans at the sound, sinking his teeth in your neck once again, heâs so needy right now, you feel his body temperature burning.
Youâre burning up too.
Jungkook whispers in your ear, âtake off my boxers.â
And you do, after that you start stroking his hard thick length, heâs so big, as you stare down at it, you gasp because itâs leaking already and itâs angry.
Heâs been neglected for the longest time, you actually hate his girlfriend, but good for you. You get to feel him inside you like this.
Heâs hungry for this. As you finally start to do the magic of your hands, he lets out a guttural moan, itâs so loud, and it rings in your ears.
you love the sounds heâs making right now. He sounds so hot almost like an animal in heat.
But he starts fucking your hand furiously, you lift his head up from your neck to look at him and you just want to keep him with you forever
Heâs so beautiful.
Heâs drooling, his eyes are closed as he feels the pleasure that you are giving him, the pleasure that heâs been denied for the longest time.
âT-Thank you so much for this because you have no idea how much I need this you have no idea how much I need you⊠yn- ngh⊠Iâve been dreaming about this⊠how about you⊠and you feel so much better than my imaginationâ
Jungkook cannot wait anymore though, just as heâs close, he wraps your legs around his waist and gently removes your hand, kisses you hard as he shoves his cock in your warm pussy.
âLet me feel your pussy, I need you, babyâŠâ he begs, you grip his shoulders and kiss his cheek. He lets out a shuddering breath once your heat cages him in.
He starts moving his hips at a really fast pace, heâs jackhammering into you, Jungkooks moaning is echoing throughout the back room.
âNGHH mhmm AHHHGâŠ. AHHHâŠâ
The pleasure that youâre feeling right now is the most that youâve ever felt in your life and you never knew that you could feel this good while having sex.
The sex with him is feeling so hot, so good and so fucking raw.
Heâs so big you can see it bulging from inside of you, you gasp.
âCum⊠please Cum inside me.â
You press desperate kisses on his neck, and on the hollow of his throat Heâs so vocal about this. So hot. And then he lets out a desperate mewl as he cums inside your cunt.
Itâs hot, thick and full as he fills you up to brim.
But itâs starts leaking out because itâs so much, you can feel it running down your thighs.
âYou felt a-ah⊠so fuckin good, yn.â
When itâs over, the two of you lie tangled together on the worn couch, your breaths mingling in the quiet.
âIâm sorry,â he says suddenly, his voice hoarse. âI shouldnât haveââ
âDonât,â you cut him off, resting a hand on his chest. âDonât apologize.â
He looks at you, his eyes searching for something he canât find.
âYouâre not alone, Jungkook,â you say softly. âNot anymore.â
But as he drifts off to sleep, your words echo in his mind, and unease curls in his chest.
âąâąâą
The first rays of sunlight filter through the cracks in the blinds, casting faint streaks across the cramped backroom of the café. The room is quiet, save for the sound of Jungkook's breathing. He lies awake on the couch, staring at the ceiling, your head resting on his chest, your arm draped over him like a lifeline.
The memories of the night before play in his mind on an endless loop-your soft moans, the way your body had responded to his touch, how you had whispered his name like a prayer. He feels a pang of guilt, but not for what he did. He doesn't regret it. Not the way your warmth had pulled him from the cold void he'd been living in, not the way you made him forget the weight of the world for a few fleeting hours.
What eats at him is the realization that he used you-your body, your kindness, your feelingsâ for his own selfish needs. And yet, as much as the guilt gnaws at him, a darker truth lingers: it had felt so good. You had felt so good.
Your breathing changes, pulling him from his thoughts. You stir slightly, your fingers twitching against his chest before you lift your head to meet his gaze.
"Good morning," you say softly, your voice thick with sleep.
He swallows hard, unsure of what to say.
âMorning,â he replies, his voice quieter than he intends.
You sit up slowly, the blanket slipping from your shoulders as you adjust yourself on the edge of the couch. For a moment, neither of you speaks, the weight of what happened between you hanging in the air.
âAre you okay?â you ask finally, breaking the silence.
âI don't know,â he admits, running a hand through his disheveled hair.
You bite your lip, looking down at your lap. "Last night..."
âWasn't supposed to happen,â he says, cutting you off.
You flinch slightly but force a small smile. âI know,â you murmur.
He sighs deeply, sitting up and leaning forward, his elbows resting on his knees. âI don't regret it,â he says finally, his voice low.
Your head snaps up, your eyes wide with surprise.
âI don't regret being with you,â he continues, his tone softening. âBut I regret... I regret that I used you. That I let my emotions... my loneliness take over. You didn't deserve that.â
You shake your head, reaching out to touch his arm. âJungkook, you didn't use me. I wanted it too.â
He looks at you, his dark eyes filled with conflict.
âI know you did. But that doesn't make it right.â
You hold his gaze, your heart aching at the vulnerability in his expression. âIt's not wrong either,â you whisper.
He exhales sharply, standing up and pulling on his jacket. âI need to think," he mutters. âI need to figure out what I'm doing.â
Jungkook walks through the quiet streets, the early morning chill biting at his skin. His mind is a storm of emotions-shame, guilt, longing. He knows he should be thinking about Mina, the case, about everything that's been spiraling out of control in his life. But all he can think about is you.
You, with your soft smile and kind eyes. You, who had welcomed him without judgment. You, who had given him a moment of solace in the chaos.
He doesn't regret being with you, but he regrets what it means. He regrets how easily you've slipped into the cracks of his carefully constructed walls.
And yet, even as he walks away, he knows he'll come back to you. He always does.
Meanwhile, youâre feeling the same⊠after he leaves you at the door as it shuts.
You sit on the couch long after Jungkook has gone, staring at the spot where he had been just minutes before. Your heart feels heavy, conflicted. Last night had been everything you'd ever wanted, but now it feels tainted by his guilt, his regret.
Still, you can't bring yourself to regret it. Not when it had felt so perfect, so right.
But as you move to the front of the café, preparing for the day ahead, you can't shake the feeling that something has shifted between you and Jungkook. And you're not sure if it's for better or worse.
But you do know that this was only the beginning and this is not gonna end ever and you donât want to.
âąâąâą
A month goes by, he hasnât visited the cafe after that night woth you, heâs started to get over Mina, The investigation starts to grow worse, the killer more mysterious than ever. Jungkookâs focus shifts entirely to the case, but the memory of that night with you lingers, a dangerous distraction. He avoids Mina entirely, his guilt toward her eclipsed by the tangled emotions he feels when he sees you.
Itâs only a matter of time before everything comes crashing down.
âąâąâą
The night Jungkook slept with you still lingers in his mind, haunting him like a half-remembered dream, a moment of clarity and chaos all at once. He tells himself it was a mistake, that he was drunk, confused, and in need of somethingâsomeoneâthat wasnât Mina. But he knows deep down, it was more than that. It was the kind of intimacy that made him feel human again, something he hadnât felt in a long time.
Yet, when he wakes up the next morning, reality settles back into place. He tries to push you out of his thoughts as he makes his way to work, but every time he passes by the cafĂ©, he finds himself looking for you, wondering if youâre there. The guilt gnaws at him, but the emptiness inside makes him think about you again, just for a moment.
What Jungkook doesnât know, what he canât see, is that the girl behind the counter, the quiet barista with the warm smile, has already made up her mind. Youâve already planned it out.
Mina is your problem now.
Mina never did anything wrong. She never even knew the darkness that lurked beneath your calm exterior. To her, you were just another face behind the counter, the one who always smiled, who always gave her the right change with a soft chuckle. She was just another customer. But that was before you realized she was still with Jungkook, and that was the last straw.
Mina knows about your crush on Jungkook because, on several occasions in the past, Jungkook had brought her with him when he visited the cafĂ©. It wasnât frequent, but enough for Mina to catch on to the subtle tension that simmered between you and him.
You hadnât meant to make it obvious, but every time Jungkook walked into the cafĂ©, your demeanor shifted. Youâd become a little more flustered, your heart would race, and your eyes would light up, especially when he greeted you with that easy smile. It didnât take much for someone like Mina, who was always looking for cracks in the façade, to notice.
The first time Jungkook brought her in, you did your best to be casual, to act as though you werenât paying any special attention to him.
But Mina, watching from across the table, saw how you seemed a little more eager, a little more careful with every cup you made for him. She observed how your voice softened when you spoke to him, how your hands trembled just slightly as you handed him his order. It wasnât hard for her to figure it out: there was something more than just friendship between you two, even if it was unspoken.
After that day, Mina started coming in more frequently when she knew Jungkook would be there.
She made a point of sitting at a table near the counter, watching the subtle interactions between you two, almost like a game. It gave her a sense of satisfactionâof controlâto see how much you cared for him, how much you tried to hide it.
What really gave Mina the final piece of the puzzle was the day Jungkook brought her in again. This time, the way you interacted with him was different. You didnât hide your feelings as well. You werenât as guarded. Maybe you thought Jungkook had stopped noticing, that you could just be yourself around him without it being awkward, but Mina saw through it.
She watched you smile at him a little too brightly, watched how your voice softened when you said his name.
Thatâs when she knew. She had been right all along.
From that point forward, Mina began to play with this knowledge, poking at you, dropping little comments here and there about Jungkook. It wasnât out of genuine interest in your well-being.
No, Mina was the type who thrived on power, on knowing things others didnât. She knew you had feelings for Jungkook, and she wasnât above using that against you.
Mina wasnât a regular customer, but she made it a point to come by whenever she knew Jungkook would be there. Sheâd sit back, watch, and wait for you to slip upâbecause she knew it wouldnât be long before you showed just how much you cared.
You watch her from the back of the café, your fingers tightening around the edge of the counter as she orders another coffee, laughs too loudly at something a friend says, her smile a little too bright.
Youâre not the type to go unnoticed, not anymore. Youâve made sure of it. But this girl? Sheâs everything youâre not. Beautiful, untainted. Her life is easyâuntainted by secrets or shame. But that life is a lie. And she doesnât deserve it.
The tension builds like a slow-burning fuse as the afternoon wears on. Your hand shakes as you wipe down the counter, the hum of the coffee machine loud in your ears.
Mina doesnât know how much you hate her. Doesnât know that sheâs the one thing standing between you and what youâve convinced yourself is yours. Jungkook.
The thought of him with her, the way he always turns to her in the cafĂ©, makes your stomach twist. You wish sheâd just disappear. So, thatâs exactly what youâll do.
âąâąâą
The café is quiet as you lock up for the night.
The faint hum of the city lingers in the distance, but it doesn't reach your small sanctuary.
It's been a month since the night with Jungkook, and though he hasn't been back to the café in days, the memory of him is enough to send a shiver through your body.
You've noticed changes-small ones at first. A nauseous unease in the mornings, a fatigue that you can't shake. Tonight, though, you can't ignore the obvious anymore. Your period is late
far too late.
When you get home, you head straight for the drawer where you hid the pregnancy test. It had been an impulsive purchase a few days ago, something you hadn't wanted to face until you
absolutely had to.
The bathroom feels impossibly quiet as you take the test, sitting on the edge of the tub and waiting for the results. Seconds stretch into an eternity. When the lines appear, bold and unmistakable, the air leaves your lungs.
Your mind races. The weight of the word sinks into your chest. It's him. Jungkook. That night.
The night when everything felt like it could finally belong to you. But now, this?
Panic bubbles inside you, but it's swallowed by something darker, more visceral.
Mina's face flashes in your mind, and it's as if the pregnancy test has turned her shadow into a living, breathing entity. She's always there, always hovering around the edges of your thoughts, a reminder of what you'll never truly have.
She broke up with Jungkook that night. You've pieced that much together. She left him, but her presence still looms over you.
It's her fault you feel this way. Her fault that Jungkook can't be entirely yours.
Before you realize it, you're out the door again, the pregnancy test left abandoned on the counter. The idea takes root in your mind with terrifying clarity.
Mina's address isn't hard to find. She used to post pictures from home-soft, curated glimpses of her perfect life.
The city streets blur as you drive. Your fingers tighten on the wheel as adrenaline floods your veins.
When you pull up to her house, the world feels unnervingly still. The house is modest but exudes her curated style, clean and pristine. A pang of rage surges through you.
You knock softly at first. When there's no response, you knock louder, your fist trembling against the wood. Finally, the door opens.
Mina stands there in a loose sweatshirt and leggings, her hair tied back, and her expression instantly hardens when she sees you.
âWhat are you doing here?â she says sharply, her voice cutting through the air.
You don't answer. You push past her, stepping into her living room without waiting for an invitation. She whirls around, glaring at you.
âExcuse me?â Mina snaps, her hands on her hips. "You can't just barge in here-"
But you're not listening. Your focus sharpens as you glance around the room, taking in the perfection of it all. Everything she's built, everything she's taken from you without even knowing it.
âYou ruined him,â you say suddenly, your voice low and trembling.
Mina freezes, her brows furrowing. âWhat are you talking about?â
âYou don't deserve him,â you continue, stepping closer. The words spill out, raw and jagged. You never did. You threw him away.â
Mina's eyes widen, and for the first time, there's a flicker of unease in her expression. âAre you insane?â she says, backing up slightly. âThis has nothing to do with you.â
But it does. It has everything to do with you.
The knife is in your pocket, cold and heavy against your palm as you pull it out. Mina's eyes go wide, and she lets out a sharp gasp.
âY/N, stop. What are vou doing?â she says, her voice trembling now, you see fear in her eyes, and that is so satisfying
âI'm taking back what's mine,â you whisper, stepping forward.
Mina screams as you lunge, but she's fast. Her nails rake across your arm as she tries to push you away, drawing blood. The knife slips from your grasp briefly, clattering to the floor, and the two of you struggle, crashing into the coffee table.
She fights harder than you expected. Her fists hit your sides, her nails digging into your skin.
But your rage is stronger, a blinding force that drives you forward.
Finally, you grab the knife again, plunging it into her chest. The scream chokes in her throat, her hands flailing weakly as you press the blade deeper.
The fight leaves her body, her eyes glazing over as she crumples to the floor.
You stand there, panting, your body trembling with adrenaline. Blood pools around her, staining the pristine floor, and it's then you notice the streaks of red on yor wn arms.
Her nails. She scratched you.
Your breath quickens as the reality sets in. You grab a dishcloth from the kitchen, wrapping it around your arm to staunch the bleeding.
You leave quickly, your mind racing. The blood you've left behind is a risk, but it's done now.
She's gone.
As you drive away, the silence in the car feels deafening. You glance at your bandaged arm, your chest heaving with a mix of fear and exhilaration.
It's over. She's gone.
But the faint, nagging thought of the blood you've left behind lingers in the back of your mind, a seed of doubt that you can't shake.
âąâąâą
The next day, Jungkookâs phone rings with the news. Minaâs body is found in at her home reported by the neighbors, discarded like a broken toy. The details of her murder are grislyâso much blood, so many signs of a struggle. But thereâs something more. Something that gnaws at him,
He doesnât know it yet, And Jungkook has no idea how close he is to the one thing heâs been hunting.
As he visits the scene of the crime, his heart heavy with guilt over his own sins, the truth starts to swirl around him, each clue pulling him closer to you. But you are always just one step ahead.
And youâre not finished yet.
âąâąâą
Jungkook stands at the edge of the crime scene, Minaâs home. Familiar home, his mind racing as he watches the forensic team finish their work. Minaâs body has been taken away, but something about the scene feels unfinishedâunnerving. As the team packs up, the lingering sense of wrongness creeps into his chest.
He takes a few more steps into the room, his eyes scanning every inch.
The silence is heavy, thick with the smell of blood, and something else, something he canât quite place. He feels like heâs being watched even though heâs the only one left. His gut instinct tells him thereâs more to find, something hidden beneath the surface.
âDetective Jeon,â a voice calls out, pulling him from his thoughts. He turns to see Officer Lee, the junior detective, holding a small evidence bag.
âWhat is it?â Jungkook asks, his voice tight with impatience.
âSir,â Lee continues, stepping closer. âWe found something odd in the kitchen area, near the counter. Itâs fresh blood, but it doesnât match the scene at all. Itâs⊠different.â
Jungkook raises an eyebrow, his curiosity piqued. âWhat do you mean, different?â
Leeâs face shifts, his expression nervous. âItâs not the same consistency as the blood weâve been seeing from the victims. It seems⊠newer, almost as if it wasnât part of the original violence.â
Jungkookâs heart skips a beat. The blood. Itâs almost like the killer made a mistake. He follows Lee to the kitchen, where they find the dark stain on the floor. Itâs small but unmistakable, a sharp contrast against the faded red of the rest of the scene.
He kneels down, his gloved fingers brushing the edges of the stain. The blood is darker than what theyâve seen from the victim, almost as though itâs been there for some timeâbut that doesnât make sense. He knew Mina was killed just hours ago.
âIs this from the victim?â Jungkook asks, still focused on the stain.
âWe donât think so,â Lee replies, his tone uncertain. âItâs not consistent with the rest of the scene.â
Jungkookâs eyes narrow. âIt looks fresh.â
His instincts kick in. Something is off, and he knows itâs not just the stain. His gaze lingers on the blood. He needs to know more. If this is part of the same pattern, then theyâre dealing with something entirely different.
âSend it to forensics,â he orders. âGet it tested immediately. I need to know what weâre dealing with.â
Hours pass before Jungkook finds himself in the sterile white of the forensics lab, waiting as the technician works quickly to process the blood sample theyâve retrieved from the crime scene.
He stands by, his mind on edge, feeling the pull of the unknown tightening its grip. The room is quiet, save for the hum of machinery and the faint clicking of keyboards as the technician runs the test.
Finally, the technician hands Jungkook a printed report. Jungkook takes it with a calmness he doesnât feel, his fingers trembling ever so slightly as he scans the document.
The results are like a slap in the face.
The bloodâthis bloodâbelongs to a woman.
His chest tightens as he rereads the details. But itâs not just any woman. The test shows the presence of hormone levels consistent with early pregnancy.
A pregnant woman.
The words blur before his eyes. His mind struggles to make sense of it. Pregnant? How could it be?
This isnât just some random woman who happened to get involved in the case. This is a pregnant woman. The kind of detail that changes everything.
He stares at the report in stunned silence. Minaâs murder doesnât fit with any of the previous patterns, but this⊠this is a whole new level of complexity. And, despite his growing confusion, Jungkook canât shake the nagging thought that the killer might be someone unexpectedâsomeone whoâs been hiding in plain sight.
Jungkookâs mind races as he pieces everything together. The fact that the blood belongs to a pregnant woman is huge. It feels like a lead that could take him in an entirely new direction, but thereâs something else gnawing at him. A suspicion he canât quite shake.
Itâs the note he found on Minaâs body. The strange connection between the killings. Every victim has had a twisted background, all male, all with histories of violence or crime. But Mina⊠she was an exception. A woman. And she wasnât involved in the same kind of criminal activity.
His gut is telling him something isnât right. Heâs seen this beforeâwhen his intuition is pushing him toward an answer, even when he doesnât have all the pieces. And now, with this new revelation about the blood, that nagging feeling is only growing stronger.
Could the killer be a woman? Could the killer be pregnant? The thought unsettles him, but it makes sense. Perhaps this is the killerâs twistâtargeting those who have wronged others, whoâve hurt people in the most vicious ways, while hiding behind a carefully crafted disguise.
As he stands there, staring at the test results, a chilling realization slowly begins to creep in. He hasnât even begun to connect the dots. He hasnât yet put it all together.
And the more he thinks about it, the more he realizes the one thing thatâs been staring him in the face all along: someone close to him could be hiding this terrible secret.
But he doesnât know who that is yet.
The blood. The pregnancy. The mysterious nature of Minaâs deathâeverything points to a killer whoâs been hidden from view. Someone whoâs not just playing a part in this sick game but is actively controlling the strings.
Jungkook takes one last look at the report in his hand. The piece of paper seems to burn with the weight of its revelation.
âPregnant,â he mutters under his breath, the word tasting bitter in his mouth. âWho could it be?â
Jungkookâs thoughts are muddled. He hasnât even considered the possibility that someone he knows could be involved. But the facts keep leading him in that direction.
With every passing second, the answer feels closer, yet farther away. All Jungkook knows for certain is that this case is far more complicated than he ever imagined.
And the killer is closer than he thinks.
âąâąâą
That night? he decides to visit his favorite coffee place again
The cafĂ© is dimly lit, the warm golden glow of the overhead lights casting long shadows across the empty tables. Itâs lateâwell past closing time for most placesâbut youâre still here. Youâve started staying later than usual, lingering in the quiet of your sanctuary, unable to go home to the lingering guilt of what youâve done.
Youâre wiping down the counter when the bell above the door chimes. The sound startles you, breaking through the silence. When you look up, itâs him.
Jungkook.
Heâs standing in the doorway, his hair slightly disheveled, his eyes heavy with exhaustion. Itâs been a month since that night, and he hasnât been back since. Seeing him now feels like a punch to the chest, and for a moment, you canât breathe.
âJungkook,â you say softly, your voice barely audible. âYouâre here again after a long time..â
He offers a small, tired smile as he steps inside, his hands shoved into the pockets of his jacket. âHey,â he says, his voice low and gravelly. âI know itâs late⊠but are you still making coffee?â
You nod quickly, trying to push down the rising emotions threatening to choke you. âOf course. For you? Always.â
He sits at his usual spot near the counter, leaning back in the chair as he watches you move around the machine. The silence between you is thick, weighted with everything unsaid.
As you hand him the cup, his fingers brush against yours. The contact is brief but electric, sending a shiver up your spine. He takes a sip, his eyes closing as he lets out a soft sigh.
âThis is exactly what I needed,â he murmurs, more to himself than to you.
You canât hold it in anymore. The words burst from your lips before you can stop them. âI need to tell you something.â
He looks up at you, his brows furrowing slightly. âWhat is it?â
Your hands tremble as you grip the counter for support. Youâve been rehearsing this in your head for days, but now, with him sitting there, the reality of it feels overwhelming.
âIâm⊠Iâm pregnant,â you say finally, your voice barely above a whisper.
The words hang in the air, and for a moment, his expression is unreadable. He sets the cup down slowly, staring at you like heâs trying to piece together what you just said.
âWhat?â he says finally, his voice low and filled with disbelief.
You swallow hard, nodding. âItâs yours, Jungkook. From that night.â
His breath hitches, and he leans back in his chair, running a hand through his hair. âPregnant,â he repeats, almost to himself. The weight of the revelation sinks in, his eyes flicking to your stomach before meeting your gaze again.
âThatâs⊠thatâs a lot to process,â he says finally, his tone careful.
âBut.. promise that I wonât abandon you⊠I will take full responsibility.. donât worry⊠Iâm so sorryâ
Youâre about to say somethingâanything to break the tensionâwhen his gaze drops to your arm. His brows knit together as he notices the faint, raw scratches peeking out from beneath your sleeve.
âWhat happened to your arm?â he asks, his tone shifting, more alert now.
Your heart skips a beat, panic rising in your chest. You pull your sleeve down instinctively, hiding the marks. âItâs nothing,â you say quickly, too quickly.
He doesnât look convinced. His eyes narrow slightly as he studies you. âThose look fresh,â he says, his voice sharp. âDid someone hurt you?â
âNo,â you say firmly, forcing a laugh. âIâm just clumsy, thatâs all.â
Jungkook doesnât respond immediately. He just watches you, his gaze searching, like heâs trying to read the truth in your expression.
âY/N,â he says finally, his voice soft but insistent. âIf somethingâs going on, you need to tell me.â
You shake your head, plastering on a smile that feels more like a mask. âItâs nothing, really. You donât have to worry.â
But he doesnât look convinced. His jaw tightens, and he leans forward slightly, his fingers drumming against the edge of the table.
âAre you sure?â he asks, his voice low.
You nod quickly, avoiding his gaze. âI promise. Everythingâs fine.â
He doesnât press further, but the tension in the air is palpable. You can feel his eyes on you as you turn away, pretending to busy yourself with cleaning.
The rest of the conversation is stilted, awkward. He finishes his coffee quickly, his movements stiff and deliberate.
âI should go,â he says finally, standing up and sliding the cup toward you. âThanks for the coffee.â
You nod, forcing a smile as you watch him leave. The door swings shut behind him, and the silence that follows is deafening.
You lean against the counter, your legs trembling beneath you. The scratches on your arm burn as if in reminder. You knew this moment would come, but now that it has, you feel the weight of everything crashing down around you.
He doesnât suspect youânot yet. But the way he looked at you, the questions he asked⊠itâs only a matter of time.
âąâąâą
Jungkook sits at his desk in the dimly lit precinct, the case file for Minaâs murder spread out before him. His mind is a storm, every detail looping back to the one piece of evidence he canât shakeâthe fresh blood at the crime scene, identified as belonging to a pregnant woman.
He had brushed it off at first, thinking maybe it was some unknown accomplice or a bizarre twist in the killerâs pattern. But now, after his late-night visit to the cafĂ©, everything feels like itâs coming together in ways he wishes it wouldnât.
His hands clench into fists as he remembers Y/Nâs confession.
And then there were the scratches.
Theyâd looked raw, freshâexactly like the kind of defensive wounds a victim might leave behind. He tries to dismiss the thought. Itâs Y/N, he tells himself. Sweet, shy Y/N, who wouldnât hurt a fly. But the evidence wonât let him go.
The blood. The scratches. Her sudden nervousness, the way she pulled her sleeve down, the way she avoided his eyes when he asked her about it.
Jungkook takes a deep breath, trying to steady himself. He doesnât want to believe itâdoesnât even want to entertain the thought. But as an inspector, he knows he canât ignore the signs.
He flips through the photos from the crime scene, his eyes lingering on the smear of blood leading away from Minaâs body. The forensic team had confirmed it didnât belong to Mina, and it wasnât old enough to have been left by anyone else.
It had to be the killerâs.
He leans back in his chair, staring up at the ceiling. His mind races with conflicting thoughtsâhis duty to the case, his growing feelings for Y/N, and the sickening possibility that they might be connected in ways he canât yet comprehend.
âJeon,â his partner calls from across the room, breaking his train of thought. âAnything new?â
Jungkook shakes his head, snapping the file shut. âNo,â he lies. âStill piecing it together.â
But inside, he knows he canât ignore this.
The next night, Jungkook finds himself back at the cafĂ©. Itâs late again, and the streets are quiet, save for the occasional hum of a passing car. He tells himself heâs just here for coffee, to clear his head. But deep down, he knows thatâs not true.
Y/N is behind the counter, her movements slower than usual, as if weighed down by something unseen. She startles when she sees him walk in, her eyes wide, but she quickly masks it with a smile.
âBack again?â she asks, her voice trembling slightly.
He nods, offering a small smile of his own. âCouldnât stay away. You make the best coffee, remember?â
She laughs softly, but it doesnât reach her eyes. He watches her closely as she moves, noticing the way she avoids his gaze, the way she keeps her sleeves tugged down over her wrists.
When she sets the cup in front of him, he doesnât drink right away. Instead, he leans forward, resting his elbows on the counter.
âY/N,â he says softly, his voice steady but probing.
She looks up at him, her smile faltering. âYeah?â
âYou never told me how you got those scratches,â he says, his tone casual but his eyes sharp.
Her breath catches, and he sees the flicker of panic in her expression before she quickly masks it. âI told you,â she says lightly. âIâm clumsy.â
âClumsy enough to leave marks like that?â he presses, his gaze unrelenting.
Her hands tremble slightly as she picks up a cloth and starts wiping down the counter. âWhy are you asking?â she says, her tone defensive.
He leans back, his jaw tightening. âJust curious. You know, with everything going on⊠people getting hurt. Makes me worry.â
She doesnât respond, her focus fixed on the counter. The tension between them is thick, the silence stretching uncomfortably.
âIâm fine,â she says finally, her voice barely above a whisper.
But Jungkook isnât convinced. Every instinct in him is screaming that something is wrong, that sheâs hiding something. And yet, despite everything, a part of him doesnât want to believe it.
âOkay,â he says finally, his tone softening. âIf you say so.â
But as he leaves the cafĂ© that night, the weight of his suspicions feels heavier than ever. The blood, the scratches, her nervousnessâit all lines up too perfectly to ignore.
Jungkook walks slowly back to his car, his mind swirling with thoughts he doesnât want to entertain. He stops just short of the driverâs seat, leaning against the door and staring at the dark street ahead.
The Y/N he knowsâthe one heâs been drawn to, the one who seemed so kind, so unassumingâcouldnât possibly be capable of this. Could she?
He slams his fist lightly against the roof of the car, frustration boiling under his skin. He doesnât want to doubt her. But the evidence doesnât lie.
That same night, Jungkook decides to dive deeper into the case. He returns to the precinct and retrieves the forensic report on the blood found at Minaâs home. Heâs read it before, but now, with fresh eyes, he scans the details again.
The report confirms it: the blood belongs to a pregnant woman. The realization sends a chill down his spine.
Jungkook rubs a hand over his face, exhaustion creeping in as he tries to piece it all together. The killer had left no other traceâno prints, no DNAâjust this blood. It was careless, uncharacteristic of someone who had been so meticulous with the other murders.
Why now? he wonders.
The connection feels tenuous at best, but the scratches on Y/Nâs arm flash in his mind again, and he canât ignore the unease building in his chest.
âJeon,â his partner calls from his desk, interrupting his thoughts. âYouâre still here? Go home, man. Youâve been at this for weeks.â
Jungkook forces a nod, shutting the file and grabbing his coat. âYeah, Iâm going,â he mutters.
But he doesnât go home.
Instead, he drives back to Minaâs house, parking a short distance away and stepping out into the cold night. The crime scene has long since been cleared, but he needs to see it again, needs to feel it.
The house looms dark and silent, a grim reminder of what had happened within its walls. He steps closer, his boots crunching against the gravel as he shines his flashlight across the ground.
And then he sees itâa faint stain on the walkway leading away from the house.
His heart pounds as he kneels down, pulling on gloves and carefully swabbing the dried blood. Itâs faint but fresh enough to have gone unnoticed during the initial sweep.
He stands, staring at the swab in his hand. It could be nothing, a stray smear left behind by someone from the forensics team. But it could also be something.
Someone.
As he slips the evidence into a bag, his mind circles back to Y/N. The scratches. Her sudden announcement. The way she seemed so on edge, so unlike herself.
The thought makes his stomach twist painfully. He doesnât want to believe it, but the pieces are falling into place, and the picture theyâre forming is one he canât ignore.
He gets back into his car, gripping the steering wheel tightly. His next steps are clear: have the blood tested again, cross-reference it, and get answers.
But for now, he sits in the dark, staring out at the empty street,
Caught between his duty as an inspector and the growing fear that the woman heâs falling for might be the one heâs been chasing all along.
âąâąâą
Itâs been days since Jungkook swabbed the blood at Minaâs crime scene. Days of sleepless nights, staring at reports, running DNA tests, and trying to ignore the tightening noose of suspicion around Y/N.
The results came back that morning. The blood is a match. A match for the mysterious pregnant killer. A match for Y/N, You.
The words on the report burn into his mind, but he canât bring himself to process them fully. Instead, he spends hours driving aimlessly through Seodaemun-gu, circling back to the cafĂ© before stopping outside Y/Nâs small apartment.
Heâs not sure what heâs going to say, or do. The woman heâs fallen forâwho is carrying his childâhas killed at least eighteen people, including Mina. But the thought of turning you in feels like a betrayal heâs incapable of.
Jungkook climbs the steps to your door, his heart pounding so hard heâs sure youâll hear it the moment he knocks.
The door opens almost immediately, and Y/Nâs face lights up in surprise. âJungkook,â you say softly, but thereâs a tension in your voice, as if youâve been expecting this moment.
He steps inside without asking, closing the door behind him. His eyes scan the room, searching for somethingâanything that might confirm what he already knows.
âYouâve been avoiding me,â you say, your voice low. You move to the small kitchen, your movements stiff.
âY/N,â he says, his voice calm but firm. âWe need to talk.â
You freeze, your back to him, her hand resting on the counter. âAbout what?â
He doesnât answer immediately, instead stepping closer. âYou already know what.â
Y/N turns to face him, Your expression guarded. âI donât know what youâre talking about, Jungkook.â
âDonât,â he says, his tone sharper than he intends. He exhales slowly, trying to keep his emotions in check. âI know, Y/N. About Mina. About all of it.â
Your face pales, and for a moment, you doesnât respond. Then you cross your arms, your gaze steady but wary. âYouâre mistaken,â you say evenly.
âIâm not,â he replies. He reaches into his jacket and pulls out the forensic report, dropping it onto the table. âThis is your blood. At Minaâs house. You were there.â
Y/Nâs breath catches, and you looks down at the report, your hands trembling. âItâs not what you think,â you whisper,
âThen tell me what it is!â His voice rises, the frustration and desperation spilling out. âBecause the evidence says you killed her, Y/N. It says youâve killed all of them.â
She doesnât deny it. Instead, she steps back, her hands gripping the edge of the counter as if to steady herself. âI did it,â she says quietly, her voice breaking. âBut they deserved it, Jungkook. Every single one of them.â
He stares at her, the weight of her confession hitting him like a freight train. âMina didnât deserve it,â he says, his voice hollow.
Her eyes fill with tears, and she shakes her head. âShe broke you, Jungkook. She hurt you. And I couldnâtââ
âThat wasnât your decision to make!â he shouts, his voice cracking with emotion. âYou had no right!â
Silence falls between them, heavy and suffocating. Y/Nâs tears spill over, but she doesnât move, doesnât try to defend herself further.
Jungkook rubs a hand over his face, his thoughts spiraling. He knows what he should doâwhat his duty demands. But when he looks at her, at the woman carrying his child, he feels nothing but agony.
âIâm pregnant,â she says suddenly, her voice trembling.
âI know,â he says, his voice barely above a whisper.
âSERIOUSLY YN What the fuck have you done? I fell in love with a psychotic killer. FUCK!â
She flinches at his tone, her tears falling harder. âI didnât mean for this to happen,â she says, her voice cracking. âI just, I couldnât let them keep hurting people. I couldnât let her keep hurting you.â
Jungkook closes his eyes, her words tearing through him. When he finally looks at her again, his expression is unreadable. âDo you understand what youâve done?â he asks, his voice quiet but laced with pain.
âYes,â she whispers.
âYouâve destroyed everything,â he says, his voice breaking.
She sobs, collapsing into a chair. âI didnât mean to destroy you, Jungkook. Iââ
âYou didnât destroy me,â he cuts her off, his tone icy. âYou destroyed us.â
The room falls silent again, the weight of his words suffocating them both.
Finally, he speaks, his voice hollow. âI canât turn you in, Y/N. I should, but I canât. Because Iââ He stops himself, shaking his head as if to dispel the thought. âBut I need you to know that what youâve done⊠itâs unforgivable.â
She looks up at him, her tear-streaked face full of anguish. âThen what happens now?â
Jungkook stares at her for a long moment, his jaw clenched, his hands trembling. âI donât know,â he says finally, his voice barely audible. âI donât know.â
And with that, he turns and walks out, leaving her alone with her guilt and the devastating weight of what sheâs done.
âąâąâą
He takes a lot of Days to think about what heâs gonna do next, the truth is that heâs fallen too deeply in love with you to turn you in especially since he found out that youâre pregnant and as fucked up as it sounds, but the way you confessed to him that you killed Mina because she had hurt him,
It switched something inside him.. no one has ever gone that far for him.
Youâre expecting his child
He has to do something to save you. He cannot turn you in no matter what.
So he decides to do something, a week later.
Jungkook sits alone in his car, parked a block away from the station. The stack of case files sits on the passenger seat, the details of eighteen brutal murders outlined in gruesome detail. At the top of the stack is Minaâs file.
The weight of what heâs about to do crushes his chest, but heâs made his decision.
If you go down, you take his child with you. You take him with you.
He exhales sharply, gripping the steering wheel until his knuckles turn white. Heâs always been a by-the-book cop, but the moment he fell for Y/N, that part of him started to crumble. Now, heâs about to destroy whatâs left of it.
He enters the station with confidence and a mask.
The precinct buzzes with energy as Jungkook walks in, the familiar hum of chatter and clacking keyboards filling the air. His partner, Detective Choi, greets him with a nod.
âGot something for me, Jeon?â Choi asks, leaning back in his chair.
Jungkook sets the files down on his desk, forcing a calm expression. âYeah,â he says. âIâve been looking into a lead.â
Choi raises an eyebrow. âA lead? Weâve been spinning our wheels on this for months. What kind of lead?â
Jungkook opens Minaâs file, pulling out the report he fabricated the night before. He had spent hours doctoring evidence, crafting a story that would absolve Y/N of suspicion.
âThis,â he says, handing the report to Choi.
Choi scans the document, his expression shifting from skepticism to curiosity. âA drug connection?â
âYeah,â Jungkook lies smoothly. âI traced the source of the drug found in all the victims to a trafficking ring operating out of Incheon. Itâs messy, but I think one of their enforcers is responsible for the killings.â
Choi frowns, flipping through the pages. âAn enforcer who kills eighteen people, including Mina, and just disappears?â
âThatâs the thing,â Jungkook says, leaning in. âI think theyâve already been eliminated. Internal cleaning. It explains why the killings stopped after Minaâs case.â
Itâs a bold lie, but Jungkook delivers it with conviction, weaving in just enough plausible details to make it stick. He knows Choi is sharp, but he also knows his partner is tired of this case. They all are.
Choi nods slowly, handing the report back. âItâs a stretch, but it tracks. Youâre saying we close this case on the assumption the killerâs dead?â
Jungkook shrugs, feigning indifference. âUnless youâve got a better lead, I donât see another option. The evidence lines up. Itâs messy, but it fits.â
Choi exhales heavily, rubbing his temples. âFine. Iâll run it by the chief.â
âąâąâą
The reaction is mixed. Some detectives are relieved to put the case behind them, satisfied with Jungkookâs explanation. Others grumble about loose ends and unanswered questions, but no one presses too hard.
âGood work, Jeon,â the chief says, clapping him on the shoulder. âYouâve been on this for months. Go home. Get some rest.â
Jungkook forces a smile, nodding. âThanks, chief.â
As he walks out of the precinct, he feels the weight of his actions settle over him. Heâs betrayed his badge, his oath, and every victim in this case.
But heâs saved you.
But thereâs still a lot of loose ends that he needs to tie up, especially to convince his department that the pregnant woman was a pawn.
He needs to do something really convincing, and soon because time is running out.
âąâąâą
After a lot of days later, youâre almost now almost two pregnant, Jungkook hasnât visited you after that confrontation and you think that maybe heâs abandoned you and maybe heâs gonna arrest you but youâre ready to pay for your sins.
You know what you were getting into when you decided to do this and you donât regret killing any one of them.
Especially not Mina
Only if you had any idea⊠about what is happening around youâŠ
ïżŒ The apartment is quiet when Jungkook arrives. The air feels thick with tension, the kind that comes from unsaid words, from everything thatâs been building up for weeks, months even.
Heâs been here before, countless times, but tonight feels different. Itâs as if the weight of everything thatâs happened has finally caught up to him. The lies. The murder. The twisted love youâve both been hiding from.
Youâre sitting at the kitchen table when he walks in, a cup of cold coffee in front of you, untouched. The dim light casts long shadows across your face,
making you look almost ethereal, but thereâs a darkness in your eyes that he hasnât seen before. He doesnât know whether itâs the guilt or the truth that lingers between you both, but itâs there. Itâs palpable.
You donât stand up when he enters. You donât even look at him at first. Instead, your fingers trace the rim of the cup absentmindedly, like youâre lost in thought, deciding what to say. Or maybe deciding if you should say anything at all.
âYouâre here,â you say finally, your voice quiet, almost resigned. âI was wondering when youâd come.â
Jungkook closes the door behind him, his breath heavy. The sight of you is almost too much to bear.
He feels the pull, the urgency of everything thatâs been building up since that night at the cafĂ©. But thereâs something else too. Something darker. The guilt. The secret heâs been keeping. The knowledge that heâs closing his eyes to the truth.
âI had to,â he replies, his voice hoarse. His eyes move to you, scanning your face, trying to find the woman he once thought he understood, the one who wasnât a murderer. But now, nothing seems as simple as it once did.
You finally look up, your eyes meeting his, and for a brief moment, he sees it. The crack in your facade. The vulnerability that youâve been hiding. But itâs fleeting. Quickly masked by that cold, calculating expression heâs learned to fear.
âYou did what you had to?â you echo, a bitter smile tugging at your lips. âFunny. I didnât know I was something you had to protect.â
Your stomach twists, guilt washing over you as you feel the weight of your words. The truth that heâs been avoiding hits you like a punch to the gut.
âI didnât want toâŠ,â he starts, his words faltering. âI didnât want any of this. But I couldnât let you go. Not after everything.â
You smile, but itâs not a smile at all. Itâs a mask. A shield youâve put up, but he sees through it. Just like heâs starting to see through everything youâve done.
âWhy didnât you let me go, Jungkook?â you ask, standing slowly, your eyes never leaving his. You take a step toward him, the space between you narrowing with every heartbeat. âBecause of your guilt? Or because you want me? Because you want us?â
Jungkook feels the heat rising in his chest, his body tense, his hands balled into fists at his sides. He wants to deny it, wants to tell you that itâs not like that, but the truth is too raw to ignore. Heâs in too deep. Heâs in love with you.
âIâŠâ he hesitates, struggling with the words that seem impossible to say. âI donât know what to believe anymore, Y/N. But I want you. More than anything.â
The words hang in the air between you both, thick with tension. You step closer, the space between you vanishing entirely. Your breath is warm against his skin as you raise a hand to his chest, tracing a line down to the hem of his shirt.
âThen why do you keep pretending like this is all just a mistake?â Your voice is soft now, a little breathless, but thereâs something in it that makes his heart race even faster. âYou know what Iâve done. You know the truth. So why are we still playing this game?â
His chest tightens as he stares into your eyes, the question echoing in his mind. Why are we still playing this game?
Heâs already crossed too many lines, already made choices that canât be undone. Heâs in love with you, and thatâs the only truth he can hold onto right now. But the guilt, the knowledge of what youâve doneâitâs suffocating him.
âIâm here because I donât have a choice,â he says, his voice barely a whisper. âIâve already made my choice. And itâs you.â
You look at him, your gaze calculating, but something flickers in your eyes. Relief? Or is it something darker? He canât tell anymore.
âYou donât have to choose between me and the truth, Jungkook,â you say, stepping even closer until youâre inches apart. âThe truth is⊠we belong together. In everything weâve done. In everything weâll do.â
The words send a shiver through him. Thereâs no going back now. He knows it. You know it.
His hands reach for you, pulling you into him, and your lips meet in a kiss that is desperate and consuming. Heâs not thinking anymore. Heâs not questioning. Heâs just here, with you, drowning in everything thatâs pulled you both together.
When you finally break apart, his breath is ragged, his chest heaving. Your hands rest on his shoulders, your eyes dark with something he canât quite place.
âIâll do anything for you,â he says, his voice hoarse, the words pouring out of him without thought.
âI know,â you reply softly, your fingers brushing against his neck. âAnd Iâll do anything for you too. But we have to be honest with each other now. No more lies.â
He nods, the weight of your words sinking into his bones. Thereâs no turning back now. âJungkook.. you know it was a big skill investigation rate. How did you even convince your department to close the case tell me what did you do.â
He looks at you and smiles
Heâs made his choice.
âOkay fine I will tell you.â
The investigation was closing in, and with each passing day, the walls seemed to close in tighter around Jungkook. The bloodâso carefully planted at Minaâs crime sceneâwas becoming a ticking time bomb, and the pressure to keep Y/N safe weighed heavily on him. His heart hammered in his chest every time the case came up in discussion, and he knew he had to take drastic measures.
He needed to shut it all down. Permanently.
Thatâs when it hit him: a recently discovered body in a nearby district. A womanâpregnant, recently deceased, and conveniently found under suspicious circumstances. She wasnât the killer, but to Jungkook, she might as well have been. He could use her to frame the entire investigation.
When Jungkook visited the morgue that night, the body lay still on the cold steel table, a haunting reminder of the fragile line between life and death. The woman had died under mysterious circumstances, no clear motive, no clear suspect. And with her pregnancy, she was the perfect pawn.
Jungkookâs mind raced as he walked around the body, his eyes lingering on her swollen belly, her pale face, the indistinct bruises on her skin that told a story he wasnât entirely sure he wanted to know. He felt a sharp pang in his chest, the ghost of guilt flickering behind his thoughts. But there was no time for hesitation. He needed this body.
In his mind, he already had a plan.
He would stage the scene, make it look like this woman was the killer. Heâd plant evidence that suggested the woman had been linked to Minaâs deathâtrace amounts of blood, a few fingerprints in the wrong places. A well-placed piece of clothing or object to tie her to the scene. It was risky, but it was the only way to close the case without implicating Y/N.
The morgue attendant, a sleepy-eyed man who didnât seem to care much for the dead, handed him the body without question. Jungkook took a deep breath, making sure his hands didnât shake. He carefully moved the body, knowing exactly what he needed to do.
Hours later, the police were called to a new crime scene. It was the same as alwaysâan empty alleyway with the body of a woman found in a position that suggested something far darker than a random attack. The crime scene looked eerily similar to the previous murders, and thatâs exactly what Jungkook had hoped for.
His mind worked quickly, placing the body of the pregnant woman at the scene as though she had been the one to kill Mina. The blood trail leading away from her. A few well-placed items. The evidence was there, but just subtle enough to make it believable.
The next day, Jungkook presented the findings to the department. His colleagues seemed to buy it without much question.
The body of the pregnant woman, found near the alley where Mina had been murdered, in her own home, was identified as the suspect. The evidenceâthough still sparseâwas enough to back up the theory he had fabricated.
âIâve spoken with forensics,â Jungkook said, standing tall as the room buzzed with suspicion. âThe blood found near Minaâs body and the scene where this woman was found confirms our theory. This woman, whoever she was, was clearly involved. And she was pregnant, which explains her connection to the killer weâve been hunting.â
The room fell silent, the officers looking at each other in confusion. But Jungkook pressed on, pushing the narrative with an authoritative tone.
âShe was part of the criminal network, no doubt. This is why the killer used her. She was a pawn, an expendable figure, dragged into something much larger.â
âBut with her death, weâve finally identified her role. Sheâs the one we were after.â
Jungkookâs voice was steady, rehearsed, convincing. He wasnât just presenting evidence; he was weaving the story.
One of the officers, a sharp-eyed veteran named Park, raised an eyebrow, leaning forward with a skeptical look. âAre you sure, Jeon? This all seems⊠too neat. A little too perfect.â
Jungkook took a breath, pushing his doubts aside. âWe have to tie it up. The evidence is there. It explains everything. And it leads us to believe that the killer is someone who knew how to manipulate the situation. A pregnant woman was used to distract us from the true killer.â
He met Parkâs gaze, holding it long enough to send the message. There was no going back now. He had to make this work.
âąâąâą
After a lot of deliberation, and no further suspicions or clues, Jungkooks lie worked
But there were too many questions now. How far could he go before his lies caught up to him? Would the department ever suspect him, even if theyâd closed the case?
And most importantly, how much longer could he keep this secretâhis secretâhidden from everyone, especially from Y/N?
With the departmentâs approval, Jungkook walked away from the case, his mind heavy with the weight of the lies heâd told. But as whenever he looked at Y/N, the mother of his child, he knew that no matter what it took, he would do whatever it took to keep her from being discovered.
The announcement came in later that day: Case #178-C, the Seodaemun Serial Killings, officially closed.
The case was officially closed. The department was satisfied, the investigation wrapped up, and the media was ready to move on to the next headline. Jungkook, however, couldnât shake the feeling that everything was unraveling. He had used the body of a pregnant woman, a victim in her own right, to save Y/Nâand his own conscience.
And now you two, will be together forever, and it will be your own heaven where no one will ever disturb you both and your growing family.
Everything is fair in love and war after to all
And this was both.
The love stored in his heart and the war of his own conscious, and eventually the love for you and his heart lawn over the war in his conscious.
âSo you see, yn? Start packing your bags. Youâre moving in with me and weâre gonna get married and have a child and live happily ever after.â
He stares at you with a lot of love in his eyes, but thereâs something darker and you recognize it because itâs such a familiar look
A look that you often saw in your own mirror.
You kiss him again and smile against his lips.
You will do anything for him and you know now that he will also do anything for you.
Everything was worth it.
He was always worth it.
And he knows for a fact that youâre always gonna be worth it
#jungkook smut#bts smut#jungkook x reader#yandere bts#yandere jungkook#yandere jjk#jjk smut#yandere x reader#yandere smut#smut#jeon jungkook x reader#jungkook fic#jungkook ff#jungkook fanfiction#bts ff#bts fanfic#bts fanfction#jeongguk smut#jeon jeongguk#bts x reader#jungkook x you#jungkook x y/n#bts x you#bts x y/n#jjk x reader#jjk x you#jjk x y/n#jungkook angst#jungkook fluff#bts angst
1K notes
·
View notes
Text
DRAMIONE FIC RECS + WHY YOU SHOULD READ THEM â 100k+ words edition
hogwarts: a home by coralcollective â reimagined horcrux hunt. draco is so down bad for hermione and the smut is crazyyy. theo/hermione friendship. pansy is the breakout character and you'll love her. there's nsfw art and inappropriate use of the malfoy signet ring. please check the tags! (it says incomplete on ao3, but it's only missing epilogues so don't be afraid of starting it)
word count: 372,978
chapters: 67/70
the commoner's guide to bedding a royal by olivieblake â god, this fic!!!! it's a modern royal au and the ensemble of characters make this whole world feel so alive. it's inspired by will/kate and harry/meghan and it's sooo cute. theo and daphne were the breakout characters and i love them dearly. if you're looking for a lighthearted romcom-esque, occasionally angsty (because duh!) fic, this is it!!! i probably read this in two days which is insane considering the word count, but that should just tell you how lovely this whole fic was. there's a second part to this if you're itching for more afterwards (and it's just as good!)
word count: 503,570
chapters: 45/45
draco malfoy and the mortifying ordeal of being in love by isthisselfcare â honestly if you haven't read this yet..... this is god tier. a CLASSIC. this should be taught in the schools. hermione's a magical researcher / healer and draco's one of the best aurors out there. he's assigned to protect hermione because she's in the midst of a big discovery. hermione's not happy about it and draco isn't either. slow burn!! idiots in LOVE!! forced proximity!!!!! EMBEDDED ART!!! honestly this is the fic that made me want to learn how to bind which is so serious and if you haven't read this yet you need to.
word count: 199,548
chapters: 36/36
the disappearances of draco malfoy by speechwriter â this is my new canon. it's a deathly hallows rewrite where draco accepts dumbledore's offer to fake his death and go into hiding with the order. enemies to friends to lovers. i honestly can't even remember what happened in canon because this is IT for me.
word count: 289,780
chapters: 33/33
this world or any other series by olivieblake â includes clean (book one) and marked (book two). anything by olivieblake should be a must-read, i swear to god. this one starts as a year 6 slow burn. draco and hermione are assigned partners for potions and it all snowballs from there. olivie writes so beautifully and her characterizations for hermione / draco are so good. slight warning for marked: this destroyed me and i pretend it doesn't exist, but it's still a must-read.
word count: 118,892 & 178,268
chapters: 31/31 & 39/39
rights and wrongs series by lovesbitca8 â you want fluffy dramione? read the first two parts of the rights and wrongs series. you want dark and heavy dramione? read the auction, an alternate universe of the fluffy dramione, where voldemort wins and they all get auctioned off to death eaters. please check the tags for the voldy wins au! all three were chef's kiss and coming from someone who isn't a fan of dark aus, reading the first two helped me get through the auction because you know where draco's coming from / what's in his head. you can just read the auction without reading the first two parts unless you like catching parallels and having more depth / context (which i very much love).
word count: 174,911 & 160,297 & 325,876
chapters: 36/36 & 24/24 & 41/41
#we can also call this my dramione reading log honestly#dramione#draco x hermione#dramione fic recs#draco malfoy#hermione granger#draco malfoy x hermione granger#dramione recs#talk to me about dramione because i have more recs and i will take recs i never tire of reading about them
3K notes
·
View notes
Text
ᥣđ© I LAUGH LIKE ME AGAIN (SHE LAUGHS LIKE YOU)
FEATURING: dazai osamu
SUMMARY: four years apart and the ultimate question is about to be answered: do you and dazai really still know each other, or are you clinging to a fantasy of the past? you decide to put it to the test with a game of wits and questions when dazai gets back to your apartmentâbut as the game drags on, dazai starts to wonder if maybe he was wrong. worse, if maybe he would prefer to be wrong.
(wordcount: 14.5k; Ćsfw; fem!reader; port mafia executive!reader, jealous!dazai, possessive!dazai, smoking & drinking, unprotected sex, switch!dazai, switch!reader, undertones of angst (happy ending). lmk if anything is missing, im rushing to get this out!)
AUTHOR'S NOTES: guys here it IS - sorry it's late, but TRUST it's worth it. i'm so proud of this fic, genuinely one of the things im most proud of writing. this is technically a part 2 to he's my collar but can be read as a standalone
It takes far too long for Dazai to make it out of the Port Mafia headquarters, with both Akutagawa and Chuuya prowling about like the dogs they are. He wonders if you tipped either of them offâChuuya, in particularâbecause the slug had been looking around like he was searching for someone. He thinks youâre entirely wretched for it, knowing that if he got caught, heâd be trapped in that damp and filthy torture chamber until he managed to finagle his way out, and he plans to make it known to you just how entirely displeased he is by the situation.Â
The path to your apartment is achingly familiar, and the giddiness in his chest is something he hasnât felt since the day he left. He knows that he should probably be more carefulâheâs still in Port Mafia territory, your apartment spans the top floor of the easternmost building of the five towersâbut he also knows that youâre the only one with direct access to the cameras in this building so heâs more reckless than he wouldâve otherwise been.Â
The floors tick up agonizingly slowly, Dazai swears that there must be something wrong with the elevator because itâs never taken this long before to get up to your place. His fingers thrum against his thigh, and his foot taps the ground impatiently. He paces from corner to corner within the small space like a caged animal. He thinks that maybe he should be taking advantage of the time alone, come up with some better excuses as to why he didnât say anything to you before he left.
âI wouldnât have left,â isnât going to cut it. As true as it might be, itâs not the full truth, and Dazai knows youâll be able to sniff it out in a matter of a few seconds with a clear head. Heâs not walking into a cheerful reunion between old lovers, heâs walking into whatâs about to be a stressful game of chess against a strategist whom Dazai has always considered a near-equal, a battle of wits against a woman whose whole life has revolved around political warfare. If he wants to keep his dignity intact and his secrets safe, heâs going to have to be incredibly cautious with what he says to you and even with how he reacts to what you say to him.
Still, he canât help the giddiness. The excitement. Heâs missed you. Heâs missed you so much that it hurts. Heâd thought that over time, the longing for you would go away, but it never did. If anything, it got worse because, over time, the pictures of you started to lack the soothing feeling they used to bring to the aching in his chest. Over time, he started to forget the sound of your voice and the sound of your laugh.
Heâd known that youâd been sent away on foreign business not long after his last call to you, but he didnât think Mori would actually keep you abroad for three whole years. Heâd been hoping, maybe, that he could stumble into you one day. Or maybe just watch from afar, get close enough to hear the sound of your voice again. Heâs been grossly denied of you for too long, and he knows that itâs of his own doing but that only makes it worse.
When the elevator dings, announcing his arrival on your floor, Dazai is sorely unprepared for the conversation about to take place. He steps into your penthouse, eyes drifting around the familiar vast space.
Like your office, not much has changed since the last time he was here. Your coffee table is still set down a few centimeters too close to the couch in the living roomâthe same couch he had his first kiss on with you when the two of you were sixteen and drunk on champagne celebrating a successful mission. You still hang your black jacket over a chair instead of properly on a hanger, itâs why it always has a crease on the backâheâd noticed it when you left your office, and he canât help but smile slightly at the confirmation as his eyes linger on where itâs draped over one of your kitchen chairs.Â
You tried to convince him that youâve changed in the years the two of you have been apart, but Dazai doesnât think youâve changed much at all.
Youâre leaning against the windows, looking down on the cityâhe knows you mustâve heard the elevator, but you havenât bothered to look his way yet. Thereâs an indecipherable expression on your face and a glass of wine in your hand. Youâre still dressed in your suit and Dazai notices thereâs a glass of whiskey on the rocks untouched on the kitchen table. He shrugs off his trench coat and drapes it over yours, hoping that the scent of you seeps into it because heâs gone too long without it.
His fingers curl around the glass of whiskey youâd left out for him, and for a moment, he swears that heâs eighteen again. Heâs making his way to your penthouse after a long mission with Chuuya, youâre expecting himâyou always areâand he can never push away the fondness that squeezes his chest when he finds you lounging back on your couch, flipping through channels to find something to watch, a glass of his favorite whiskey set down on the coffee table next to where your feet are propped up as you wait for him to show up.
He wonders if you even care to remember what his favorite is. He wouldnât blame you if you didnât.
He makes his way out of the kitchen and back into the living room, and heâs reminded that heâs not eighteen and youâre not waiting for him to show up after a mission because you finally look at him, and his breath catches in his throat.
He thinks you look a bit older now than you did four years agoâto be expected, of courseâand thereâs a coldness to your eyes that hadnât been there before. Impossibly, he thinks that youâre somehow even more beautiful than you were when he last saw you, and he realizes again, throat tightening, that even after three years of no contact with you, heâs just as in love with you now as he was the day he left.
He knew it back then before he left, even if he never said it. When he was eighteen and could only feel any inkling of pleasure when he was with you; it wasnât like heâd never tried to have sex with other people, heâd whore himself out for information at any given chance and slept around frequently after you started dating a civilian to distract himself from the bitter jealousy he felt, but heâd never known how good it was supposed to feel until he slept with you for the first time. When he was seventeen and could only ever feel comfortable in your presence, seeking you out at any given chance when he couldnât handle being around people anymore; heâd curl up in your office with your orange blanket, napping as you did work, knowing that youâd keep people away from him. He thinks he mightâve even known when he was sixteen when the two of you first met on the streets of the Kanagawa prefecture.
He wonders if you even believed him when he said it earlierâhe doubts it, you donât seem too keen to believe anything he says, and he doesnât blame you for it.Â
But whether you believe it or not, itâs yoursâthat rotted heart of his, shriveled and shabby, riddled with holes and decay, half-eaten by maggots and worms it might be, but itâs still yours. He thinks that it was meant to be yours since the moment he was born, and itâll be yours even after the two of you are long dead. He doesnât know how heâs meant to go without you againâhe doesnât think he can. He knows that despite the tentative ceasefire, the Port Mafia and the Agency are still enemies, but he knows in his heart that he wonât be able to leave you again. Even just the sight of you has condemned him completely.Â
Then you speak, and at once, his entire world falls apart.
âIâm leaving again in the morning,â you finally say, tone flat and eyes sharp and shrewd as you look over him. He reminds himself that this is not a reunion, that he needs to get his head on straight if he wants to make it out of your apartment in one piece, but itâs hard. âI was only brought back to smooth things over with the government after the whole fiasco with Fitzgerald and his American cronies. Iâll be leaving for Russia in the morning to meet with Tolstoy and Nabakov. Hopefully, gain some intel on Fyodor Dostoevskyâs plans before the man makes another move on the city.â
He⊠did not anticipate that youâd be leaving again so soon. Something cold and sharp latches to his heart, like jagged nails ripping it apart. He makes sure it doesnât show on his face.
âBe careful,â he tells you quietly. âDostoevsky⊠heâs not someone to underestimate. Just-Just be careful.â
You raise your eyebrows, unimpressed, âIâve worked with Dostoevsky before. I donât need you to warn me about him.âÂ
Your voice is cool. Sharp. Dazai sighs, knowing that anything he mightâve said to you earlier in the night is lost to you, and he doesnât know if heâll have it in him to bare his heart again, only for you to scorn it. Heâs not meeting with you as he knows youâas his closest friend, as his lover; heâs meeting with you as the Port Mafia executive. Not the version of you that treats with allies, wining and dining them with glittering eyes and playful smiles as you use your ability to ensure they never turn on the Port Mafia; the version of you that sits at the round table with enemies, with a quick mind and calculating eyes as you decide whether or not theyâre worthy of being absorbed into the Port Mafia or if Double Black will be sent out to eradicate them.Â
âI told you everything I had to say back at the office,â Dazai tries, and he wonders if youâll let him get away with itâhe doubts it, but itâs worth a shot, and it will at least stall for a few moments as he tries to forcibly turn the cogs in his mind to figure out the best way of appeasing you. âI missed you. I⊠couldnât say goodbye to you, not if I was to leave. IâŠâ
I love you.
He doesnât say it; he thinks he was only able to push it out earlier in the night in the heat of the moment, the orgasm-induced haze fogging his brain enough to let it slip out in desperation to make you give him a chance. And it worked because you gave him a second chance when you invited him back to your apartment, but Dazai doesnât know how to make the most of the opportunity. He thinks heâs a fool for not preparing for this before getting here.
You click your tongue sharply, lip curling up in something close to disgust, and Dazai is glad he didnât speak his âI love youâ because he thinks he mightâve actually cried if that was your reaction to him saying it.
âThe only things you told me earlier in the night were half-truths and sweet talk. I didnât invite you back to my apartment to hear you beg for another chance, Dazai,â you say coolly, and Dazai desperately misses the sound of his given name on your tongue. The corner of your lip curves up into a half-smirk, eyes suddenly glittering beneath the dim lighting of your penthouse as you add, âAlthough, I wouldnât be opposed to it after we talk.â
He thinks the fact that youâre already considering an after might be a good sign. He can feel his cheeks flush a bit at your words, but instead of letting himself get rattled, he takes a step forward, well into your personal space, as he dips his face down so close to yours that his lips nearly brush yours as he speaks.
âIâd beg pretty for you,â he whispers, letting his voice drop an octave as his gaze tracks down to your lips. âIâd even get on my knees.â
Unfortunately, you are entirely unbothered by the proposition. âWeâll see, I suppose,â you say, and then raise your eyebrows, signaling for him to take a step back.
He does, and he feels distinctly put out and rejected by your reaction, but he sighs and asks, âWhat did you invite me here for then?âÂ
He very much does not like the way your eyes glitter nowâshrewd this time, more amused, dangerous, as if you know the two of you are about to tread down territory that heâs going to be unfamiliar with. You nod for him to follow you into the kitchen, taking a seat at the head of the table and motioning for him to sit opposite you.
He does.
âWe can play a game,â you finally concede. Dazai settles back against his chair, fingers still tapping rhythmically against his glass of whiskey, a terrible habit that Dazai has accrued whenever he feels cornered. Not a frequent occurrence, but damning when it is. Your eyes linger on them, and he knows youâve pinpointed the tell. He forces himself to stop, but from the way your lips curl up, he can tell it doesnât matter. âTen questions each. Yes or no answers only.â
Dazai notices that you pointedly leave out any rule about the honesty of each answerâintentional, surely, so he probes.
âHow do we determine the winner?â Dazai asks. He finally takes a sip of the fine whiskey youâd poured for him, and his question from earlier is answered. His favorite. Thereâs a warm feeling in his chest at the realization that youâve remembered it even after all of these years.
Your lips curve up into a sharper and wider smile, teeth glimmering like knives beneath the soft lighting of your kitchen. The glass of wine in your hands is suddenly more reminiscent of a gun being pointed at him than your choice of alcohol, and he feels as if heâs already made some egregious mistake in your eyes.
âAfter we give our answer, the other has to decide whether or not it was truthful. In the end, weâll both see how many the other got right. A test to see how well we still know each other,â is all you say in response. Youâre mocking him and his insistence that the two of you are still the same, but Dazai intends to prove himself right. You tilt your head to the side and then say, âThe prize is to be determined by the winner. Iâll ask the first question.â
Dazai winks, a lecherous comment already on his tongue about the prize, but the withering look you give him is more than enough to make it die before he can let it loose. He pointedly takes another sip of his drink and sinks in his seat.
He thinks that this should be an easy win. Youâre quite the adept liar, but youâve always had a glaring tell. Well, he amends, itâs glaring to him, at least. Not many others would be observant enough to catch it, and even if they were, only someone with an abundance of experience with you would be able to put it together. His gaze flickers up to meet yours, wondering if your lashes flutter right before you tell a lie. Itâs such a simple and subtle tell, so casual that it took Dazai a year and a half to put together, but it was hard to miss once he did.
You hum to yourself as you give off the appearance of thinking about a question, but Dazai knows you better than anyone, and heâs certain that you already have all ten prepared, so he rolls his eyes at the faux show of uncertainty.Â
âWe both know you know what you want to ask,â he finally says. âDo us both a favor and quit with the theatrics.â
Your lip quirks up in amusement. âAnd here I was being gracious giving you more time to formulate whatever lies youâll try to get away with,â you drawl, and Dazai nearly flinches.
âYou know me so well,â Dazai sighs to hide how disconcerted he really is. âThe question?â
You stare at him for a moment, and your lips curl up into a deceptively soft smile that almost throws Dazai off because, god, heâs missed you. And he knows youâre looking at him like this just for this specific reason because youâre a despicable bitch who knows that heâs always been easily unsettled when people show any semblance of affection toward him, but he canât help the way he falters.
He tries to brace himself for whatever invasive question youâre about to ask regarding his reasons for leaving. Tries to prepare himself to lie cleanly because heâs sure youâre as aware of his tells as he is of yours.Â
Then you ask:Â
âDid you defect because of something Oda asked of you?â
Jesus. Right for the throat. You really donât pull punches.Â
Dazaiâs throat tightens at the mention of his old friend, but heâs able to keep his expression clear of the sudden pain that your question brings on. Youâre watching him carefully for reactions, gaze hawklike as you study his face, and Dazai is not about to let you pinpoint any more of his tells so early in the game.
He figures that this is an easy question; you already know the answer but want to hear the confirmation from his lips, so he decides to tell the truth.
âYes.â
âThe truth,â you say, an indecipherable expression on your face. He wonders if you want to ask what Odasaku asked of him, but thatâs not part of the game and Dazai has no intention of answering that.
Be on the side that saves people. If both are the same to you, become a good man.
You might laugh in his faceâDazai Osamu, the Demon Prodigy, a good man? The idea is blasphemous, and he thinks it might actually hurt him if you scoff or laugh in response to hearing that, so he keeps his mouth shut and doesnât give away more than he has to, hoping that you donât just straight up ask him.
You open your lips to speak, and Dazai braces himself for the prying question, but instead, you only probe, âFirst question?â
He wonders if your whole first question and the implications of it was just a means of trying to throw him off because now heâs fumbling trying to remember what he wanted to ask you before you hit him with it. He wouldnât put it past you to play dirty like thatâbringing up his dead friend and his last request just to unsettle him to give you the edge.
âDid we meet during my underground years after I defected?â he finally asks, and yeah, he knows the answer to this question. The missing half of his ear and waking up in the old safe house he used to hide out at with you is more than enough evidence for him to come to a definite conclusion, but he wants to hear it from you.
âYes.â
Dazai inhales sharply and then murmurs, âThatâs the truth.â And then, more loudly and far more affronted, he accuses, âI canât believe you shot half of my ear off.â
He expects you to toss him a wink and a sharp grin, unrepentant and even finding amusement in his offense, but instead, your expression falters for the first time since heâs arrived. Something strange crosses your face; for whatever reason, his words leave you conflicted and Dazai suddenly feels even more nervous than he already was because now he canât help but wonder what he mightâve said to you in his drunken state.Â
He supposes thatâll have to be another question, but first, heâs going to have to figure out how to phrase it to get a yes or no answer first, without being vague enough for it to be a waste of a question or easy for you to misconstrue.
You hum after a few moments, taking a pointed sip of your wine. Dazai watches curiouslyâyouâre bothered still, youâre not even trying to hide it. He knows you have better control over your facial expressions than this, so he thinks maybe itâs a ploy to get him to start spiraling down a path of useless questions. Put off by his sudden inability to discern your schemes, a part of him wonders if maybe you were right because the him of four years ago wouldâve seen right through you right now.
âIâm afraid it had to be done,â you sigh with faux regret, but he can tell from the way the smile on your lips doesnât reach your eyes that youâre not into the banter. âWere you able to fulfill Odaâs request?âÂ
Fuck. This time Dazai canât withhold the grimace that spreads across his face. He tries to keep his voice light with a deflecting comment, âMy, bella, youâre really hitting with the deep questions tonight, arenât you?â
You raise your eyebrows, tilting your head to the side as you wait for an answer, not giving him any room to formulate a response to your question. He finally sighs and shakes his head, taking a long sip of his whiskey. He wishes he had a pack of cigarettes on him, suddenly desperately longing for the pleasant burn of the smoke against his throat; he needs the buzz badly right now.
As if you could read his mind, you shift in your seat a bit and stuff your hand into the pocket of your slacks. It takes a few seconds but you fish out a pack of cigarettes and a lighter, sliding them across the table over to him. If he wasnât already so in his head over the question you asked, heâd make a quip over the fact that you still know him so well despite your insistence otherwise, but he only pulls out a cigarette and lights it, looking curiously down at the familiar brand.
âSince when did you start smoking these?â he asks quietly, eyes fluttering shut as he tilts his head back and takes a long drag of it. He exhales slowly and then adds, âThought you liked the other ones, in the green box.â
âTeal,â you correct, and then frown a bit. â... Switched after you left.â
Dazaiâs eyes flutter back open as his gaze focuses on you, wondering if the implication you left up in the air is something he can take at face value or if itâs just another way of trying to get him to lower his guard. But from the way you suddenly donât meet his eyes, Dazai thinks you might be being honest: you switched because they reminded you of him.
Dazaiâs chest suddenly feels heavy again.
â... No,â he finally responds to your second question. âNot yet, at least.â
â... Truth,â you say, and Dazaiâs lips curl into a wry smile.
âUnfortunately.â The word slips out before he can stop it.
Your gaze flickers back up to him, curious, but Dazai doesnât give you the chance to dwell on his comment, asking his next question: âDid I⊠admit anything to you that night that I wouldnât have said while sober?â
His fingers tap rhythmically against his glass of whiskey, half-empty now; heâs anxious to hear your response.
âYou did,â you confirm.
Dazai grimaces because thatâs another truth, and that is not good. But just like how he doesnât offer any context for his answers, you donât either. He doesnât know what he mightâve admitted or how you mightâve taken itâheâs going to have to waste another question on this topic.
âTruth,â he murmurs.
You hum and then ask, âDo you still blame yourself for what happened to him?â
âCome on,â Dazai complains sharply, tossing you a dirty look now. His jaw is tight. He wonders if you keep asking about Oda as some sort of sick revenge for him leaving, ripping open wounds that never properly healed so you can dig your fingers into them and twist around. You donât look bothered by his outburst, waiting patiently for a response. He lets out an angry sigh, looking away and taking another long drink from his glass and another drag of his cigarette.Â
He voices his first lie, âNo.â
You let out a puff of air, rising to your feet and making your way over to the opposite counter, you grab the bottle of whiskey and bring it back over to him, topping off his now-empty glass before pointedly holding out your hand. He passes the cigarette over to you, tilting his head back to watch you bring it to your lipsâa part of him longs to lean forward, to slide his hand behind your neck and cradle your head as he brings his lips to yours, inhaling the smoke as you exhale it, dizzy off the proximity to you, high off the buzz of the nicotine, just like the two of you would do when before he left.
He refrains, if only barely.
You exhale the smoke, a small cloud billowing around youâDazai mourns the wasteâand then you pass the cigarette back over to him. Your fingers brush his as you do, and a spark shoots through his arm at the touch.
âA lie,â you finally say, looking down at him with a frown. âYou shouldnât blame yourself. There was nothing you couldâve done to save him.â
âYou donât know that,â Dazai says tightly, averting his gaze from you as you make your way back over to your seat across from him. âIf Iâd been faster-â
âIf Mori wants someone dead, then theyâll die,â you interrupt him, a grimace on your face as you look down at your wine glass. âTrust me, Dazai, there was no saving Oda Sakunosuke.â
Dazai pauses instead of snapping again, catching the expression on your face. Haunted, as if youâre speaking from experience. He tilts his head to the side and then asks quietly, âAre you talking about your ex-partner? Itou?â
If Dazai remembers correctly, he died on a mission when you turned eighteen. You never told him the circumstances, and he never asked, but it was the first and only time you ever broke down in front of him.
The corner of your lips tightens, âIs that your next question?â
Dazai barely withholds a frustrated sigh.Â
âNo,â he says quietly, and then asks, âDid I tell you why I couldnât say goodbye? The real reason?â
He holds his breath now as he waits for your response. One way or another, this question is a double blade: if he did tell you why, then heâs at another disadvantage because heâs going to feel distinctly bare and vulnerable; if he didnât tell you, he just admitted that he lied back at your office, at least partially.Â
After what feels like an eternity, you finally say, âYes.â
The truth. Dazai wonders when youâre going to utter your first lie, if you will, or if youâre trying to make some sort of point by being honest with him. He voices his answer and then waits impatiently for your next question as his mind races.
He desperately wants to know how you responded to him back then. Would you have come with him had he come to you before he left? Or would you have chosen the Port Mafia? He wonders if he should ask, make it one of his remaining seven questions, but he doesnât know if he has the guts to hear your answer, so maybe heâll just change the subject.
âAre you enjoying yourself at the Agency?â
For the life of him, Dazai cannot figure out your angle. First, the prying questions about Oda and now asking about the Agency. He doesnât know what he expected at the start of the gameâyouâve always been unpredictable, but even more so now. Heâs never had such a hard time reading you or your intentions before.
He starts to feel even more doubtful, wondering if you were right.
Maybe he doesnât know you as well as he thinks he does anymore.
But this is an easy question, so he says the truth with little hesitation, âI am.â
Dazai swears the corners of your lips curl up into a soft smile, but itâs gone so quickly that he mightâve imagined it.
âGood,â you say quietly. âIâm glad.â
Dazaiâs lips part, a warm feeling spreads through his chest at the honesty in your tone. Desperately, he wants to know whatâs going onâwhereâs the rage and the betrayal he expected from you? The hate? Why do you seem⊠okay with all of this?
Irrationally, he starts to wonder if everything from the office was just a heat-of-the-moment conversation. If now that youâve had time to sit on your thoughts, youâve realized⊠realized what? That youâve moved on from him? That you donât care what he does anymore? That youâve accepted that heâs no longer a part of your life? The warmth in his chest disappears, edged away by a sudden coldness and desperation because he thinks heâd rather die than go back to a life without you.
Even more irrationally, he remembers the comment you made back at the office, the admission that youâve slept around since he left. Oh god, what if you really have moved on?
He knows his next question.
âThe people you slept withâwere they all one-night stands?â
He doesnât want to know the answer unless itâs a yes.
You raise your eyebrows at the abrupt shift in his line of questioning, and then, to his absolute horror, you say, truthfully, âNo.â
âWhat do you mean no?â he asks angrilyâhe thinks if he was a bird, heâd be puffing his chest out in irritation. He feels antsy suddenly, he needs to move around. He starts tapping his foot against the floor, his fingers against the glass. And again, he thinks youâre a despicable bitch because you only look amused at his question as if heâs not beside himself with righteous fury.
âItâs not your turn,â is all you respond with, and Dazai has a distinct urge to throttle you. Then you ask, âDo you feel like you belong there?â
He halts.
His fingers freeze from where theyâre tapping against the glass, his foot freezes mid-motion. His lips part as heâs confronted with the very question that heâs been struggling with for two years now. He wants to yes, if only to maybe be a little spiteful, to rub in your face that heâs somewhere good and heâs somewhere where he belongs, and itâs not somewhere with you. A cruel dig to get back for the aching in his chest at the thought of you being with other people, but he knows that youâll catch the lie, and more importantly, he doesnât want to hurt you like that.
Maybe he has grown a bit because the Dazai of four years ago nearly killed your civilian boyfriend when he found out that you were dating someone besides him and then promptly made a show of sleeping around to try to get back at you.
So, instead, he says quite honestly, âI donât know.â
You tilt your head to the side. âNot a yes or no answer, but I suppose it works. How curious.â
He hates your cryptic comments. Pointedly, he side-eyes you as he takes another long drag of his cigarette. Already, itâs nearly down to the nub, so he puts it out on your table, ignoring the distasteful look you give him, and then reaches for another to light as he asks: âWere you in a relationship with any of them?âÂ
You roll your eyes at his prying, and he cannot hide the abject horror that crosses his face when you say, âYes.â
âThat better be a lie,â he complains, and when you look at him as if to ask if thatâs really his guess, he makes a show of pushing out his bottom lip and looking away as he says: âI cannot believe you dated other people. Cheater.â
âWe were never even dating, Daz-â
âYes, we were,â Dazai protests instantly, entirely aghast at your words. âWe absolutely were. What does that even mean? Of course, we were dating. Everybody knew it. Ask anybody. Ane-san knew. Gin-chan knew. Chuuya knew. Even Mori knew. We were so dating, you-â
âYou never officially asked me to be your girlfriend, which is, unfortunately, the most fundamental step of dating,â you interrupt him, and Dazai stares at you in disbelief.
âI bought you flowers, we fucked exclusively,â Dazai complains, aggrieved. âWe were definitely dating, and you definitely cheated on me because we never broke up.â
âIf we were dating,â you emphasize the if very pointedly, and Dazai is distinctly put out by it, âthen we broke up the day you left without saying goodbye.â
Dazai withers. He has no witty comment to return fire with, so instead, he just takes another sip of his whiskey, grateful for the combined buzz of the alcohol and the nicotine to distract him from the overwhelming guilt he feels whenever you bring up how he left you.
âDo you feel like you belong more with the Agency than you did with the Port Mafia?âÂ
Your next question is an amendment to your previous on, and it leaves Dazai just as lost.
He wants to belong with the Agency. He does. Desperately. He wants more than anything to feel as at home and comfortable in the light as he does in the dark. He doesnât want to question his place among them anymore, he doesnât want to wonder if he sticks out like a sore thumb. He wants to enter the office and feel like he doesnât have to pretend to be someone heâs not, just so he can keep his place with them. He doesnât want to have to fear at every corner that heâs going to revert to old habits, and theyâll see him for the monster that he is: a monster that should have never left the dark crevices that he crawled out from, a monster with blood so black that it strikes fear in even the most terrible mafiosos.
âNo,â he admits the insecurity thatâs plagued him to the one person he feels comfortable enough with to voice it aloud. He canât bring himself to look up at you, wondering if the admission will give you some sort of sick satisfaction, if youâll be happy that heâs not finding a place he can be comfortable in without you. Instead, he decides to rush to ask his next question: âThe one you were in a relationship with, did you love him?â
He thinks that the question came across as far more timid than he meant it to be, and his eyes slide shut as he waits for your answer.
âThere were multiple I had relationships withââ Dazai scoffs, of course, there were multiple. ââ...but no, I did not.â
He lets out a soft puff of air, shoulders slumping a bit in relief. But his fingers are still tense around his glass, waiting for whatever question youâre going to ask next thatâs going to dig deep into open wounds, stripping him of all of his masks and armor to force him to lay himself entirely bare in front of you.
âDid you really blow up Chuuyaâs car before you left?â
His eyes fly open at the sudden change of pace in your questions, noting the smirk curling at the corner of your lips and the amusement glinting in your eyes. He accepts the olive branch quickly as he gives you a sharp smile and asks: âWhat do you think?âÂ
Your hand flies to your mouth to muffle a laugh, and the smile on Dazaiâs lips becomes a bit softer as he watches you desperately try to get yourself under control. âYouâre insane, you know that?â you finally say, still trying to bite back giggles. âHe was so mad. Raged about it for weeks.â
Another question pops into Dazaiâs head at the mention of Chuuya, and before he can consider whether or not he actually wants to know the answer to it, he asks: âSpeaking of Chuuya, was he one of your trysts while I was gone?â
Suddenly, you are not laughing, and suddenly, Dazai regrets speaking.
âNo,â he says, shaking his head. âDo not tell me-â
âHe was,â you confirm.
Dazaiâs glass of whiskey is empty.Â
He grabs the bottle and drinks right from it, miserable.
âI think I wouldâve rather been stabbed through the heart,â Dazai says mournfully, and though he keeps a faux-light tone with you, his throat feels like itâs swollen, and he feels a bit sick to his stomach.
Heâs always been jealous of the bond you have with Chuuya. Absurdly jealous, even. You clicked with him quicklyâyou clicked with both of them quickly, and maybe it was a matter of the three of you being the youngest of the Port Mafiaâs uppermost echelon, but Dazai doesnât want to attribute it solely to thatâbut the way you clicked with Chuuya was different from how you clicked with Dazai. Two people so completely human locked away in the dark, clinging to one another to maintain some sense of normalcy; your and his casual humanity made Dazaiâs lack of it irrefutable and glaring.
Regardless of the why, he never liked how close you were with Chuuya.Â
Even before you were dating himâbecause you were dating himâa part of him had always felt sidelined whenever the three of you hung out together. Not because of either of your wrongdoings but just because it was hard for him to keep up with the two of you. He always felt a bit lost trying to, unable to follow along when the two of you would start laughing at jokes that he didnât understand even when you explained them to him, when you would share glances with one another that spoke whole conversations he wasnât privy to. The two of you got along in ways that Dazai would never be able to get along with anyone because thereâs just something fundamentally wrong with him at his core. Chuuya, for all of his talk and fear regarding the question of his humanity, has always been so unfailingly human in ways that Dazai, to this day, cannot fathom to understand.
After you started dating himâbecause you were dating himâit only got worse because heâd see you with Chuuya and wonder if you were better off with someone like him instead. Dazai doesnât know how to treat you right, clearly. He canât even treat himself right; and Chuuya has always been the epitome of a gentleman, loathe Dazai is to admit itâAne-san drilled that into the other boy where Mori only taught Dazai how to be cruel and unforgiving. The line between love and obsession has always been a terribly blurry one for him, and you have always wavered on either side of itâand Dazai, unfortunately, does not love healthily and obsesses so entirely that it would have most people running for the hills.Â
For better or for worse, youâre not most people.
In his spiral of insecurity, he doesnât catch the way your brows furrow as you put together some puzzle pieces. âDazai,â you say suddenly, drawing him from his thoughts abruptly. Thereâs an accusatory look in your eyes that he really does not like. âWere you the one that booby-trapped my fucking apartment?â
Dazai snorts.
âYou bastard,â you snap at him, and Dazai canât help but bite the palm of his hand as a means of trying to stifle his laughter. âMori thought it was a goddamn assassination attempt. He kept me under watch for weeks because of you. I couldnât leave the towers without half of the Black Lizards with me.â
âSorry,â he coos, not sorry at all. Dazai, because he clearly doesnât know when to learn his lesson, then he promptly asks, âAm I better fuck than Chuuya?â
âJesus Christ, Dazai, get off the topic of Chuuya and my sex life, itâs clearly only upsetting you,â you snap at him instead of answering the question. Dazai wants to argue and retain some dignity; heâs not upset, but then his entire world is shattered by your next words: âI am not answering this question.â
Dazai blanches. He can feel the blood drain from his face. Heâd thought this was an easy question to make him feel a bit better. What do you mean you wonât answer? Does that mean Chuuya-
No. Dazai refuses to believe it.
 âNo way,â he says, shaking his head. âHeâs not a better fuck than me. You canât possibly-â
âHeâs not,â you finally say, and Dazai audibly lets out a sigh of relief. âBut if you ever mention anything along the likes of that to him, you will never fuck me again, Dazai Osamu. Do you understand?â
Dazai is too relieved to even argue. âYeah.â
âNo more questions about my sex life,â you say firmly, and Dazai doesnât respond, but he does agree internally because he doesnât think his heart can handle any more scares like that. Your eyes sharpen again, and Dazai braces himself. âWere you the one to tell Mori I lied about being sick so I could skip out on the ball Mishima hosted when we were seventeen?â
Dazaiâs eyes narrow right back at you and rather than answering, he shoots one of his own questions at you: âWere you the one to tell Mori I had his contact in my phone as âignoreâ?â
You take his lack of an answer as an affirmative, correctly so. Dazai has no regrets about ratting you out to Mori because he was not about to attend Mishimaâs event without you on his arm. Heâd rather die.Â
âYou bastard, do you know the lengths I went to fake being sick? I wanted one night to relax without people breathing down my neck.â
âIf I had to go, you had to go,â Dazai retorts petulantly. âI was not about to suffer with only Chuuya as company. You had no reason to tell Mori about the contact name besides to be petty. I fought with Chuuya for weeks because I thought he was the one to do it.â
You choke on a laugh. âChuuya was so mad, he had no idea what you were talking about.â
âHe tied me to a pole and swung me around for three hours,â Dazai complains, but thereâs a smile on his lips as you burst into laughter, unable to stifle the giggles that spill from your lips.
âI know,â you wheeze, âI got it on video. We watch it sometimes when weâre bored and canât find a movie.â
Dazai gapes, and you laugh harder, but for the first time in four years, Dazai finally feels⊠at home, he feels comfortable in his own skin again. Heâs back in your penthouse, heâs drinking his favorite whiskey and smoking his favorite brand of cigarettes, youâre sitting at the kitchen table with him and laughing your head off at his expense, and for a moment, Dazai feels as if nothing has changed: he feels like himself again, eighteen and entirely enamored by the sight and sound of you, and you feel like you again, all of the doubt that had begun to rise to his chest as the two of you played the questions game long gone.
He falls in love with you all over again. Harder this time. Faster. He thinks heâll fall in love with you again and again every day for the rest of your lives, each time more than the last, no matter how impossible it might seem.
He thinks maybe itâs not that he feels like he belongs with the Port Mafia more than the Agency. He thinks that itâs you. Youâre the one he feels at home with. Youâre the one heâs comfortable enough to be himself with. Youâre the one he belongs with, always has, and always will.
After a few moments, you finally manage to get yourself under control, still giggling a bit as you look back up at him. Your smile is softer now, eyes gentle, more genuine than the smile you gave him before asking the first question. Dazaiâs breath catches because when was the last time you looked at him like thisâthe last time anyone has looked at him like this? A warm feeling spreads through his chest; Dazai thinks he would stay in this moment forever if given the opportunity.
âAre you happy?â you ask quietly
Dazai blinks, startled, and an odd feeling spreads through his chest once your question registers. His lips part to answer, but no words leave them; he draws back as if heâs been slapped, a bit flustered and confused because thatâs the furthest thing from what he expected you to ask. He wonders if youâd asked the last three questions to lull him into a false sense of security.
âI-â he starts to say but cuts himself off. âWhat kind of question is that?âÂ
He tries to deflect instead of properly answering, frowning, but you only raise your eyebrows, pointedly keeping your lips sealed to let him know that you expect an answer. He shakes his head and then sighs, bouncing the question in his head a few times before going for a cop-out: âWhen Iâm with you? Always.â
Youâre not pleased by his decision, frowning as you look away from himâhe knows thatâs not what you asked, not really, but you should have been clearer with your question if you wanted him to give you the answer you expected. But he doesnât like the sudden disappointment on your face, it leaves his skin itchy and his chest longing for the soft look to return.
So he sits there, ruminating on the question. Is he happy? He should be, right? Heâs saving people. Heâs on the way to fulfilling Odasakuâs final request. He has a whole group of people whom he can rely on without having to fear being taken advantage of or betrayed at every corner. Heâs happy.
But is he trying to convince himself of it? Why is he still trying to kill himself if heâs happy? Why is there a part of him that feels lonely no matter how surrounded he is by people? Why is it that when heâs at his lowest points, the only two people he wishes he could be with are you and Chuuya? Why does he ache for the days heâd spend dragging the two of you around Yokohama, causing trouble for Moriâthe closest heâs ever felt to enjoying life?
âI donât know,â he finally amends his answer, looking down at the bottle in front of him and the cinders of the cigarette dangling between his fingers. He lifts it to his lips again, taking one last drag of it as he tries to figure out what his last question should be.
Thereâs only one pressing question he has left, but he hesitates, unsure if he really wants to know your answer.
He forces it out anyway.
âWould you⊠would you have come with me back then?â His voice is quieter than he intended, cracks over âmeâ, and to your credit, you donât react to the question, expression as eerily still as it was before, as if youâre considering your words.
A yes or no. It shouldnât take this long for you to answer. Each second that passes feels like an eternity, and Dazai suddenly feels anxious, he doesnât know why he asked this question because if the answer is noâif itâs no, thenâŠ
Finally, you let you a soft sigh, taking a sip of your wine as if to prolong his agony.
Your lashes flutter before you speak.
You lie for the first time that night.
âYes.â
Dazaiâs voice sounds far away as he says, âThatâs a lie.â
âI guess you were right,â you say softly, but you sound so distant, like youâre on the opposite side of a long, empty tunnel and not sitting right in front of him. âWe do still know each other decently well; you got them all right.â
Dazai doesnât care. In fact, he would have gladly conceded a loss in this game, and he wouldâve gladly admitted that maybe the two of you donât know each other as well as you used to if it meant that he got the last question wrong because then he wouldâve just given you a coy expression and asked if youâd let him get to know this new version of you too. You wouldâve said yes, and he wouldâve made quite the pleasurable night out of it for the two of you. Instead, he had to insist that nothing has changed, and now he has to come to terms with the fact that he was right and he had known you well enough back then to know not to ask you to leave with him because you would have chosen the Mafia over him.Â
Heâs so lost in his thoughts that he doesnât even notice you approaching him until youâre leaning on the table next to him, index and middle finger coming beneath his chin to tilt his face up toward you. He looks up at you through his lashes, eyes searching your face, but he only finds another blank slate that he canât read. His breath hitches when your hand slides from his chin to cup his cheek, and he canât help the way that he leans into your touch, eyes fluttering shut.
âI would choose you over so many things, Osamu.â You speak his given name for the first time in years, but he can hardly find any comfort in it because he knows heâs not going to like what youâre about to say. Your fingers card through the tips of his hair, brushing the dark locks behind his ear as your thumb sweeps over his cheekbone. âBut not over the Port Mafia. Just like how you didnât choose to stay for me.â
âItâs not the same,â he says, voice hoarse. âItâs-â
âIt is,â you interrupt, voice deceptively gentle, and he thinks youâre entirely unfair because he can hardly focus with your touch distracting him. Heâs missed it so muchâheâs gone four years without it, without any type of touch that wasnât him getting his shit kicked in by Kunikida or an enemy. âYou didnât choose to stay for me. I wouldnât have chosen to leave for you.â
âWhy?â Dazai asks tightly, and he hates that when his jaw tenses, you smooth your fingers over it, and he unclenches it immediately.
Thereâs a sadder look in your eye now as you give him a small smile. âYou know why.â
Of course, he knows why. He feels the hatred deep in his gut as his mind draws back to Mori. Because thatâs who the issue is. Itâs not the Port Mafia. Itâs not your friendship with Kouyou. Itâs not even your friendship with Chuuya thatâs the issue. Itâs Mori and your undying loyalty to him. No matter how much you claim to despise him, bashing him every chance you get, sneering at him whenever he tries to treat you like his daughter, Dazai knows that when it comes down to it, youâll always choose him. Youâd throw yourself on a sword if he asked it of you, and not for the first time, Dazai wants to spit in the manâs face for making you feel as if youâre eternally indebted to him for rescuing you from that warzone so many years ago; for making you feel as if youâre nothing without the Mafia, nothing without him.
âYou donât owe him anything,â Dazai says tightly. âYou have to know that by nowâyou donât owe him anything.â
âI donât want to have this conversation, Dazai,â you sigh, sounding tired. Your hand drops from his face, and Dazai longs for your touch again instantly. His fingers twitch from where theyâre resting on his lap; he only barely stops himself from reaching out for you. You try to smile as you change the subject, but it hardly meets your eyes, âItâs a tie then. No prize for either of us, hm?â
Dazai is not so inclined to switch the subject. He wants to press on this now that he has the chance; he doesnât know if heâll ever be able to rip you out from beneath Moriâs thumb, but he needs to at least try⊠but youâre leaving again in the morning, and Dazai also does not want to ruin this night with you. He doesnât know when heâll get another.
So, instead, he matches your half-assed smile as he looks up at you and says, âI didnât say you got them all right. You only said that I got them all right.â
You raise your eyebrows. âDid I get any wrong?â you ask, amused.
No.
âYes.â
âLiar,â you say, but thereâs a fond lilt to your tone as you let out another puff of air, the smile on your face finally reaching your eyes as you look down at him. The soft lighting of your kitchen casts a pretty glow over your face, your smile is so entrancing that Dazai thinks he could stare at it forever.
âYouâre so beautiful,â he breathes out, the words slipping from his lips before he can stop them. âIâve missed you so much.â
Heâs sure he must look like a fool right now, entirely enamored by the sight of you, unable to even fathom drawing his gaze away. He wonders if youâll protest again, call him a liar, and shift away from him.
You donât.
The smile on your lips falls, and a wrecked expression crosses your face as your eyes search his. Your lips part to speak, and he waits with bated breath for whatever youâre about to sayâhe thinks that if you deny him again right now, it might completely shatter all of the walls heâd so carefully built to protect himself.
âIâve missed you too,â you whisper as if youâre scared to speak the words out loudâand how can he blame you when the last time you dared to speak them, he hung up on you, never hearing from him again until tonight.
God, the guilt he feels whenever he thinks of you returns with a vengeance, so intense that Dazai starts to feel sick to his stomach. He canât handle it, so he does the only thing he knows how to do to distract himself from it.
His movements are clumsy as he pushes himself up to his feet, nearly tripping over the leg of his chair, and his fingers feel clunky as he lifts them up to cup your cheeks. For a second, he fears that you might move away from him, but you donât, so he leans in to press his lips against yours.
Thereâs no tenderness to his kiss. Dazai kisses you like he wants to consume you, lips sliding messily against yours, blunt nails indent crescents into your cheeks as he holds you close. Usually, he would be embarrassed by his blatant desperation and lack of finesseâheâs never been a sloppy kisser, when the two of you were younger, you would always let out pleased hums into his mouth, lashes fluttering as he worked his lips carefully against yours, tongue sliding against your own as he traces his name on it.Â
All of his finely honed skill is thrown out the window now as he kisses you like a man who has been starved for years. He has been starved for yearsâthe quick fuck in your office did nothing to quell the longing heâs felt for you the past four years. He could kiss you for hours. Days, even, and it still wonât be enough. Nothing short of an eternity with you would be enough to make up for the four years heâs been deprived of you.
He lets out a low groan into your mouth as you nip at his bottom lip, hands sliding from your face down to your hips. Heâd take you here. Right now. But he remembers the last time he tried to fuck you on your kitchen table, it ended with him choking on the barrel of your gun as you yelled at him for being gross (âI eat on this table, you heathen!â) and heâs not particularly in the mood to set off your temper now that he finally has you in his arms again, so itâs with much restraint that he grabs you by the hips to walk you back into your bedroom.
He can hardly concentrate as your fingers twist the hair at the nape of his neck, soft moans slipping from his lips, muffled against your mouth. Itâs only sheer instinct and muscle memory that has him making his way from the kitchen and down the hall. He canât bring himself to separate his lips from yours for even a second. And heâs a mess because heâs not coherent enough to force himself to breathe properly through his nose, so his lungs are burning and his head feels a bit light, but he doesnât care so long as it means he can keep kissing you.
Turn left, turn right, second door from the end of the hall.Â
His fingers fumble for the knob of your bedroom door, pushing it open a bit too hard, considering the way he hears it slam against the wall and how you tug his hair hard in retaliation. He doesnât care, moans a bit louder even when your nails scrape his stinging scalp, and you let out a derisive noise against his lips before biting down hard enough to draw blood.
The taste of iron makes a slow smile curl at his lips, walking you back toward the bed, and itâs only when your knees hit the edge that you finally pull away from him. âIf you broke my door, youâre fixing it, Osamu.â
Dazaiâs smile is lecherous. âIâm gonna break something alright,â he croons, relishing in the way you immediately roll your eyes at him. Itâs all so familiarâhe can almost pretend that he never left, that nothing has changed since the two of you were eighteen, dumb, reckless, and in love.
Before he can press you back against the bed, he feels your fingers drop from around his neck to his waistband, curling around his belt loops. In an instant, youâve twisted the both of you around, and suddenly, itâs the back of Dazaiâs knees pressed against the edge of the bed as you push him down onto the mattress. He hits the sheets with an âoofâ and a hazy smile, surrounded by the scent of you, drowning in the sight of you. He thinks he might be in heaven.Â
You shift on top of him, straddling his waist; Dazaiâs hands instantly come to rest on your thighs, sliding up the sides to grab your ass and pull you more firmly onto him. He groans when he feels you grind down against his cock, and god, heâs already hard just from kissing you. He hears you snort above him, but Dazai doesnât even have it in him to be embarrassed.
His lips part in a silent moan as you lean down to ghost kisses along his jaw, hands sliding up his chest. He feels you wrap your fingers around his bolo tie and tug it, you let out a sharp noise of distaste against his skin before murmuring: âI hate this ugly thing.â
He lets out a huff of laughter that quickly breaks off into a moan when your lips trail to the spot behind his ear that always makes him writhe. His fingers bite into your hips, pushing you down on him as he rocks his hips up into youâshit, he might be able to cum just from this. His cock is straining painfully against his beige pants, twitching as he grinds up against your clothed cunt. He thinks maybe if he fucks his hips upward a few more times, he might be able to push himself over the edge, but as desperate as he is to chase his release, he refuses to cum anywhere but inside of you.
Plus, he thinks heâll be shamed to hell and back if he finishes in his pants with you hardly touching him.Â
âThen strip me out of it,â he gasps, lashes fluttering as your teeth graze his pulse point right above the edge of his bandages. Fuck, heâd give anything for you to bite downâriddle him with marks he canât cover so he can flaunt them off to everyone who looks at him. Dazai knows that there are countless men and women out there whoâd die to be able to be called yours, he wants them to know heâs the only one who can take that honor. âWhatâre you waiting for?âÂ
You hum and then sit back on his hipsâhe bites his bottom lip raw as you unintentionally put even more pressure on his cock. Heâs half dazed out, not realizing that your grip tightened on his bolo tie until you straight up yank it off of him, snapping the string around his neck.
âNo!â he complains, watching with wide eyes and parted lips as you fling the now-broken bolo tie off to the side of your room. âNoooo, whyâd you do that? Iâm going to have to order a new one.â
âBoo-hoo,â you say dryly, hardly paying attention to him as your fingers curl around the hem of his vest, pulling it up over his head, snorting when he lets out a puff of irritation as his nose gets caught around the collar.Â
âThis is so unsexy,â he protests, rubbing his nose. âShouldnât you be more gentle?âÂ
âStop wearing so many layers of clothes,â you retort, but Dazai is placated when you lean back down to kiss the corner of his lips, lashes fluttering as his eyes slide shut. He lets out a pleased hum as you kiss down his jaw, nimble fingers unbuttoning his final layer of clothing. He wishes he wore an undershirt just to watch you huff in annoyance. His breath catches as you nip at his skin and then murmur, âThis better?âÂ
âYeah,â he breathes out, voice wavering as you get down to the last button of his shirt, sliding it off of his shoulders and easing him out of it. His body shudders as your hands slide over the bandages wrapped around his abdomen. Fuck, itâs been so long since anyoneâs touched him beneath his clothes, even with the bandages still acting as a layer between the two of you, his nerves are on end, sensitive to everywhere your fingers touch.
He wonders if youâll pull off the bandagesâitâs a line that the two of you only crossed once back then, and although the idea of it has him brimming with anxiety, he longs for the feeling of your skin flush to his.
He almost feels a bit embarrassed when you sit back again to admire him as if thereâs not a scar-ridden body hidden beneath the bandages. You look at him like heâs beautiful, like heâs not a monster disguised as a man, like heâs human. Dazai has always felt distinctly seen beneath your stare like you can see through all of the masks he wears and see him for him, and that has not changed over the past four years.
Heâs missed the comfort of it. He has. It used to unnerve him back then, thinking someone could see him so clearly when he tried so hard and so carefully to hide himself beneath layers of impenetrable masks, but after going four years alone, with no one for him to turn to, no one he could look at and have them just know what heâs thinkingâŠÂ
Yosano once mentioned offhandedly that to be loved is to be seen, and Dazai thinks the only time heâs ever been seenâtruly seen, down to his core, deep in his soulâis when heâs with you.
It was a very lonely four years without you.
âI thought about you every day,â Dazai tells you softly, the grip on your hips easing up as he looks up at you. âMade a list of places I wanted to bring you and then burned it because I never thought Iâd get the chance to be with you again. Stared at old pictures of you all the time, couldnât sleep without thinking about memories with you. Drank your favorite wine just so I could pretend I was tasting it off your lips.â
You bring your hand up to cup his cheek, and Dazai leans into your touch, eyes fluttering shut again. He kisses your palm, humming softly when your thumb runs along his bottom lip.
âThere wasnât a single day I went without you crossing my mind,â you admit quietly and Dazaiâs breath hitches as he stares up at you, dark eyes wide and lips parted. He thinks he should say something, anything really, but itâs a lost cause. You donât seem to mind, luckily, because you only lean down to brush your lips against his again.
This kiss is softer than the last, lips trembling against yours as your tongue dances along his inner lip. He thinks his cheeks might feel wet but he doesnât dare acknowledge it; you donât either, only using your thumbs to brush away the tears as they spill over his cheeks.
âAre you really leaving again in the morning?â he finally asks, and he hates that his voice cracks over the words.
You hum in agreement, still hovering over him, still running your thumbs along his cheekbone. His lashes droop shut, but he forces them back open as you speak. âI am. Bright and early. Flight leaves at six.â
His gaze flickers to the left, over to where your alarm clock is set up on your nightstand.Â
12:35
He looks back at you, eyes swimming with desperation.
You give him a soft, wry smile. âWe should make the most of the night then, hm?â
He doesnât waste any time on that.
His grip on your hip tightens, and in one swift motion, he flips the two of you around, elbows resting on the mattress on either side of your head as he hovers above you. Your eyes glitter as you give him a coy smile, and again, Dazai falls in love.
Then, he ruins the moment.
âTell me how you fucked Chuuya.â
Your smile drops. âOsamu, what the fuck?â
âTell me,â he pouts, nudging his nose against your cheek and peppering soft kisses on your cheek and down your neck. His knees drop to the bed on either side of your hips, holding up his weight as he reaches down to unbutton your slacks, sliding them off your body. A smile flickers onto his lips as his fingers graze your pantiesâdrenched, finally, evidence that heâs not the only one so affected by this. âTell me. Were you on top? Did he take you from behind? Was he rough? No, itâs Chuuya-â
âIf you care so much about how Chuuya fucks, Osamu, how about you go fuck him yourself?â you interrupt him.
Dazai gags.
âDonât ever say that again,â he says and then returns to his mission, fumbling with his own pants now as he tries to yank them and his briefs off, unable to hold back the relieved sigh when he finally frees his cock, unceremoniously tossing them to the floor. âTell me.âÂ
âWhy do you care so much, hm?â you ask, reaching up to brush his hair out of his eyes. âI told you that you were better.â
Youâre only trying to deflect from the question and he almost lets you succeed, partially placated, but he stays strong, leveling an unrelenting stare onto you as he waits for your answer. You sigh heavily, and he knows heâs won.
âNot rough,â you say as if Dazai hasnât already come to that conclusion. Chuuyaâs had a crush on you since the three of you were sixteen. Dazai assumed he had grown out of it, but evidently, he was wrong, considering he took the opportunity to sleep with Dazaiâs girlfriendâbecause you were his girlfriendâthe moment Dazai was out of the picture. What a little snake. Dazai needs to vandalize his apartment again. Maybe set up a few more bombs. Heâs only drawn back from his mental spiral when you start talking again: âHe took the lead. Wanted to see my face the whole time, make sure I was okay.â
âHow gentlemanly of him,â Dazai saysâheâs not bitter. Heâs not.
âIt was,â you agree, too genuinely.
Dazai squints at you hard.Â
âDonât look at me like that,â you say. âYou asked.â
âYou donât need to sound so wistful.â
âOh, shut the fuck up, Osamu, Iâm not wistful.â
âHow-â
âAre we going to talk about Nakahara Chuuya all night, or are you going to fuck me?â you interrupt immediately, looking increasingly incensed. Dazai only raises his chin at you pointedlyâyouâre the one that slept with Chuuya. âTime is dwindling, Osamu.â
Okay.Â
Dazaiâs gaze flickers back to the clock and then back down to you, withering a bit under your irritated stare. He sighs and leans back over you to kiss the corner of your lips, fingers curling around the hem of your panties to slide them off your legs.
âYouâre so beautiful,â he murmurs against your skin, his kisses linger against your skin now as he drags his lips down to your jaw. âThe thought of him being with youâŠâ
It makes Dazai want to do terrible things. The part of him that he locked up deep within rattles at the bars of its cage, furious and bloodthirsty. The trigger finger heâs been so careful to tame twitches with a desire he hasnât felt in four years. The thought of anyone being with you makes Dazai sick to his stomachâDazai is the only one who should get to see you like this, be with you like thisâbut the thought of Chuuya being with you is so much worse.
âYouâre all Iâve ever wanted, Osamu,â you tell him quietly, fingers intertwining with his hair as he nips at your neck. âNo matter how much I slept around, nothing was ever able to fill the hole losing you left. Not even Chuuya.â
Dazai exhales, shakyâthe guilt returns, and so does the doubt because what right does he have sitting here being petty about what you did while he was gone when he was the one who left you behind without so much as a word? His eyes flutter shut, he spares a few more chaste kisses across your throat before lifting his face back to yours, kissing you gently.
âLet me make up for lost time then,â he says softly.
He doesnât hesitate now, one hand dropping down to your thigh, lifting it to wrap around his waist as he presses his hips into you. His breath shudders when his cock slips against your folds, a low moan spilling from his lips. He has to reach down to angle himself properly, tip pressing against your tight hole.
The fingers of his free hands are shaky as he lifts them to cup your cheek. âLook at me,â he says, heat spreading through his abdomen when he realizes you already can hardly hold your eyes open, quick breaths escaping your lips as you try to keep yourself from cumming already. âLook at me, I want to see you.â
Your eyes flutter open, lidded and heavy as you look up at him, and Dazai thinks that maybe he could cum just from the expression on your face alone, inhaling sharply as his thumb drags across your bottom lip. He thinks maybe he should try to get ahold of himself, fearing that if he pushes inside of you now, he might cum on the spot, but his cock is aching so badly that Dazai thinks he might die if he doesnât feel your heat around him immediately.
It takes all of his strength to keep his eyes from sliding shut as he pushes inside of you, desperate to see the way your face twists and your breath catches. Your lips tremble, chest rising and falling rapidly, he can feel your thighs tightening around his waist, and Dazai groans when your heels dig into his lower back, forcing his hips flush to you, burying his cock deep in your cunt. He chokes, grip on your thigh bruising; his abdomen tightens, and his head feels light.
No way, he thinks, gritting his teeth as he tries to hold back the waves of pleasure threatening to tear through him. He hears you let out a huff of laughter beneath him, and Dazai would shut you up with a sharp thrust of your hips, but heâs still desperately trying to regain control over himself, so he thinks thatâs maybe not the best idea.
His forehead drops to rest on the pillow next to your head, lips brushing your ear as he lets out a low moan. He canât even savor the way you let out a full-body shudder, fingers coming up to toy with the hair at the nape of his neck. Fuck, youâre so tightâDazai can feel your walls tightening around him, spasming, his breath is shaky, and he tries to distract himself by pressing his lips to your skin, mouthing messily at your skin, sucking and nipping and counting to ten as he tries to settle down.
But itâs hard with the soft sighs youâre letting out, the way your fingers catch on his tousled hair, tugging enough to make his scalp sting. His head is so fogged that he can hardly think straightâgod, heâs missed this, he hasnât had the comfort of letting himself go like this in⊠since he left, really. His mind is always turning, plotting out ten, twenty, thirty steps in advance in fear of making a mistake, slipping up and letting the rest of the Agency see him for what he is, slipping up and their lives being the price just like with Odasaku. Itâs only with you thatâs ever comfortable enough to finally let the cogs in his brain slow and shatter, lose himself in carnal pleasures, lose himself in you; itâs been four years since heâs last had a reprieve from his own brain.
But he only lets himself slip halfwayâtonight isnât going to be about him, itâs about you. He has four years to make up for and he intends on getting a good start on it tonight.
He pants quietly as he lifts his head enough to bite your earlobe, tugging it gently before pressing his lips to your temple. âIâve missed this,â he admits, voice raspy and clogged thick with emotion. âIâve-â
He can hardly get the words out, and his breath catches when your hands slide from behind his head to cup his cheeks, forcing him to look at you. He thinks he must look wreckedâhe can already feel the sweat beading on his forehead, and he knows his eyes are probably glazed over. You still look stunning, a soft expression on your face as you look up at him as if heâs not buried to the hilt inside of you.Â
Unfair, he thinks mournfully.Â
âWhat're you still holding onto, hm?â you ask, and Dazai only barely registers your words, sinking into your touch as you brush matted hair out of his eyes. He can finally bring himself to roll his hipsâexperimental, slow, trying to make sure he can actually move before trying to fuck you. Then you sigh softly, and heâs too out of it to try to make out the expression on your face as you say: âYou work yourself so hard⊠always have. Iâve got you, you can let go, Dazai. Câmon.â
âNo,â he hums, but his voice is strained, evidence of his struggle. âTonightâs about my favorite girl.â
âFavorite?â you tease, lifting your shoulders off the bed to ghost a kiss against his lips that nearly has his hips stutteringâthe conversation so reminiscent of one that the two of you had at seventeen it almost makes him smile.
âOnly,â he amends quietly, kissing your nose, then the corner of your lips, and then nipping your jawline.
Just when he thinks heâs good to actually start picking up the pace, intent on fucking the thoughts out of you until you forget about your stupid flight in the morning, he catches a suspicious expression on your face, one that has his eyes narrowing.
âWhat?â he asks dubiously; your eyes are glittering in a way that he knows from experience is dangerous.Â
You donât say anything, just look pointedly at your thighs, then up to his shoulders. Dazai tilts his head to the side, recognizing what you want, and after a momentâs hesitation, he slides your legs up above his shoulders, folding them to your chest, eyes nearly rolling back at the new angle. Fuck, his hips do stutter this time, breath hitching. He has to readjust again, mentally focus on not cumming on the spot, and then-
And then you say: âHe had my legs like this.â
A trick.Â
Dazai knows it.Â
Youâre trying to make him let go of the thin thread of self-control he still has. To give in. To let all of the gears in his brain finally fall apart for the first time in four years.
He knows it.
He falls for it anyway.
Dazaiâs jaw tightens, gaze snapping down to you only to catch a goading look in your eyes, a sly smile on your lips that Dazai has every intention of fucking right off your face. He inhales sharply, one hand sliding up your body to grab your chin, blunt nails digging a bit too deeply into your cheeks.
âYeah?â he says, voice rough.Â
Your lashes flutter and lips part as Dazai pointedly jerks his hips up. Your breath catches over a moan, and Dazai knows that this new angle is affecting you just as much as it is him.
âMhm,â you agree, and just like that, the thin thread snaps.
He snaps his hips into you so hard that your bedframe bangs loudly against the wall behind it, quickly setting a steady pace, nice and deep, quick enough that you canât even get a breath of air to your lungs before Dazai is fucking it right out of you. Already, heâs so fucked out that his mind is in shambles, one hand settling on your hip to hold you in place as he thrusts his hips into you, hitting that sweet spot with each stroke while his other hand, still cupping your face, slides down to your neck.
He doesnât squeezeâwouldnât dare to cut off the pretty noises spilling from your lips, moans of his names, choked gasps and cries between each rock of his hipsâbut the fact that you trust him, him, enough to have his fingers wrapped around your throat is always a quick way make him topple over the edge.
His eyes dart down to your chest, realizing, very unfortunately, that you havenât taken off your button-up yet. He nearly bites down on his tongue in frustration as his hand comes down to your chest, careful to keep the pace of his hips as he hooks his fingers around the first button just to yank down, popping off half of the buttons of your expensive dress shirt and haphazardly pulling it off of you to toss it to the side before fumbling with the clip of your bra.
âOsamu,â you hiss, and Dazai revels in the way your voice wavers with each thrust, biting back moans. âThatâs the second-â
You donât get to finish your sentence. Dazai tosses your bra over with your discarded shirt and dips his head down to wrap his lips around your nipple, tongue swirling around the sensitive bud before rolling it between his teeth, and youâre goneâDazai lets out a muffled groan around you as your back arches up into him, crying out his name, walls tightening around him as you cum on his cock.
âOh-f-hah-fuck,â Dazai gasps as he rests his head on your collarbone, grip on your waist tightening.Â
He has to physically force himself to lift his head, bracing his forearm on the mattress next to your head, desperate to see the way your eyes roll back, he can already feel himself teetering over the edgeâthe lewd sound of skin-on-skin, the sloppiness of his cock driving in and out of your cunt, he can feel your cum dripping down his cock, smeared on his pelvis.
His hand slides behind your head, lifting it from where you have it pressed against the mattress. Beautifulâthe only thought that can run through his hazy brain is of you and how perfect you are, lips swollen and bitten raw, parted as pitched moans escape them, tears spilling from the corner of your eyes as he fucks you through your orgasm and right into a second. Heâs the only one that should ever get to see you like this, with your clever brain fucked right and dumb, body writhing against the bed as you cling to him.
He leans down again, trailing sloppy kisses against your neck, gasping as he starts to feel his high approaching.
âNo one makes you feel like this,â he says, or maybe he begs, heâs not sure if heâs making a statement or pleading for you to tell him itâs the truth. âTell me. T-shit-tell me.â
âNo one,â you sob over another moan, and Dazai can feel your pussy fluttering around himâhe wonders if heâs already fucked you into a third. Usually, it takes longer. âNo one, Osamu, youâre the only one.â
And thatâs the only thing he needed to hear to give him that final push. His steady pace shifts into a more erratic one, sloppy and desperate, as he chases a high thatâs just out of reach. His moans are muffled against your skin, teeth scraping your collarbone, mind a jumbled mess of thoughts of you. He feels your fingers trembling as you lift them to his cheeks, pulling his face up to press your lips against his, and thatâs all it takes: he lets out a wanton moan against your mouth, pressing your legs further into your chest as his hips still against your ass, finishing deep inside of you.
Spots dance in his vision, head buzzing and ears ringing; he swears his orgasm lasts an eternity, body shaking and shuddering above you, letting out breathy moans into your mouth. He can feel his cum dribbling out of you, pooling onto the sheets beneath the two of you, so much of it that you canât even keep it all in you.Â
He doesnât let his lips leave yours onceâthe kisses are messy and sloppy, devoid of all of the finesse that the two of you usually have, teeth nearly clashing, tongues sliding against each otherâs.Â
Itâs only when his vision finally starts to clear and his head feels less on the verge of passing out does Dazai finally trails kisses from your lips to your jaw and down your neck before he finally collapses on top of you, mind entirely gone, like heâs floating on clouds. He pants as he tries to catch his breath, eyes lidded as he absently trails kisses along your chest and collarbone. He thinks the world could be ending around the two of you, and Dazai wouldnât even have the capacity to notice. For the first time in four years, he really, truly allows his brain to rest.
He doesnât know how much time passes, eyes drooping shut as he lets himself be enveloped by your arms, drowning in the comfort of your scent.
He doesnât want to know. Heâs scared to look at the clock and check.
âTonight was supposed to be about you,â Dazai finally complains, burying his face in your chest as he pouts.
You only let out a soft laugh above him. âWe have the rest of our lives for that⊠You deserved a break, Osamu.â
The rest of our lives.
Dazaiâs throat tightens, vision blurring a bit at the thoughtâhe can only barely bring himself to respond, and the words that slip out are not what he means to say: âI never thought Iâd get to be with you like this again,â he admits, voice hoarse. âI never thought-â
âI know,â you interrupt, voice quiet, a bit shaky. â... I know.â
Of course, you know.
He canât bring himself to say anything else, so he doesnât, sinking into your arms and allowing himself the comfort heâs deprived himself of for so long. He almost starts to drift offâand god, he canât remember the last time heâs dozed off willingly, only able to sleep after drinking copious amounts of alcohol or taking an even more copious number of sleeping pills. Itâs not until you speak again does he stir back awake from the brink of sleep.
âWhat did he ask of you? Oda, I mean,â you finally ask, fingers brushing through his dark hair, lulling him further to sleep.
Dazai thinks that youâre cruel, asking him while his mind is still fogged from the exhaustion following his high, and heâs still half asleep in your arms, trying to regain his bearings. The words slip out before he can think twice, forgetting his fear of you laughing at the idea of him trying to be a better man.
âHe asked me to be on the side that saves people⊠if both are the same to me, he wanted me to be a good man.â
The words dawn on him too late; he can hardly bring himself to look up at you, scared that heâs going to find an amused expression on your face or a derisive sneer. He wouldnât blame you, heâs thought the same about himself ever since he left the Port Mafia, doubt and self-loathing riddling him with every step he takes in the light. He waits for the scoff, he waits for the laugh, he waits for-
â... I think he would be proud of who youâve become, Osamu. I think youâve fulfilled his request.â
Dazai does look up at you now, feeling particularly vulnerable, still scared that he might find a mocking expression on your face but he doesnât. Only an uncharacteristically soft expression is painted on your face as you look up at the ceiling, a genuine oneâa small smile and a look in your eyes that makes his heart feel warm. You donât notice him looking until he lets slip out:
âIâve missed you so much,â he whispers.Â
(I love you, he means)
âIâve missed you too,â you say back quietly.
(I love you too)
#dazai x reader#dazai x you#dazai smut#dazai osamu x reader#dazai osamu smut#dazai osamu x you#bsd x reader#bsd smut#bsd x you#bungo stray dogs x reader#bungo stray dogs smut#bungo stray dogs x you
2K notes
·
View notes